tag:blogger.com,1999:blog-33155776762120465782009-07-04T02:04:06.822-07:00Hadith: Muslim Shareef Onlinecoolheadernoreply@blogger.comBlogger44125tag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-73926436155786970522008-03-10T10:19:00.000-07:002008-03-14T00:26:34.848-07:00Introduction to Translation of Sahih Muslim<p style="font-weight: bold; color: rgb(0, 102, 0);" align="center"><em>Translator: Abdul Hamid Siddiqui</em> </p> <hr /> <p>Sahih Muslim is a collection of sayings and deeds of Prophet Muhammad (pbuh) (also known as the <strong>sunnah</strong>). The <em>reports</em> of the Prophet's sayings and deeds are called <strong>ahadith</strong>. Muslim lived a couple of centuries after the Prophet's death and worked extremely hard to collect his ahadith. Each report in his collection was checked for compatibility with the Qur'an, and the veracity of the chain of reporters had to be painstakingly established. Muslim's collection is recognized by the overwhelming majority of the Muslim world to be one of the most authentic collections of the Sunnah of the Prophet (pbuh). </p> <p>Muslim (full name Abul Husain Muslim bin al-Hajjaj al-Nisapuri) was born in 202 A.H. and died in 261 A.H. He travelled widely to gather his collection of ahadith, including to Iraq, Saudi Arabia, Syria, and Egypt. Out of 300,000 ahadith which he evaluated, only 4,000 approximately were extracted for inclusion into his collection based on stringent acceptance criteria. Muslim was a student of Bukhari. </p> <p>It is important to realize, however, that Muslim's collection is not complete: there are other scholars who worked as Muslim did and collected other authentic reports. </p> <hr /><br /><br /><div style="text-align: center;"><span style="font-weight: bold;">Index</span><br /></div><ul class="posts"><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-1-book-of-faith-kitab-al-iman.html">Book 1: The Book of Faith (Kitab Al-Iman)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-2-book-of-purification-kitab-al.html">Book 2: The Book of Purification (Kitab Al-Taharah...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-3-book-of-menstruation-kitab-al.html">Book 3: The Book of Menstruation (Kitab Al-Haid)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-4-book-of-prayers-kitab-al-salat.html">Book 4: The Book of Prayers (Kitab Al-Salat)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-5-book-of-zakat-kitab-al-zakat.html">Book 5: The Book of Zakat (Kitab Al-Zakat)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-6-book-of-fasting-kitab-al-sawm.html">Book 6: The Book of Fasting (Kitab Al-Sawm)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-7-book-of-pilgrimage-kitab-al-hajj.html">Book 7: The Book of Pilgrimage (Kitab Al-Hajj)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-8-book-of-marriage-kitab-al-nikah.html">Book 8: The Book of Marriage (Kitab Al-Nikah)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-9-book-of-divorce-kitab-al-talaq.html">Book 9: The Book of Divorce (Kitab Al-Talaq)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-10-book-of-transactions-kitab-al.html">Book 10: The Book of Transactions (Kitab Al-Buyu`)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-11-book-pertaining-to-rules-of.html">Book 11: The Book Pertaining to the Rules of Inher...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-12-book-of-gifts-kitab-al-hibat.html">Book 12: The Book of Gifts (Kitab Al-Hibat)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-13-book-of-bequests-kitab-al.html">Book 13: The Book of Bequests (Kitab Al-Wasiyya)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-14-book-of-vows-kitab-al-nadhr.html">Book 14: The Book of Vows (Kitab Al-Nadhr)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-15-book-of-oaths-kitab-al-aiman.html">Book 15: The Book of Oaths (Kitab Al-Aiman)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-16-book-pertaining-to-oath-for.html">Book 16: The Book Pertaining to the Oath, for Esta...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-17-book-pertaining-to-punishments.html">Book 17: The Book Pertaining to Punishments Prescr...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-18-book-pertaining-to-judicial.html">Book 18: The Book Pertaining to Judicial Decisions...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-19-book-of-jihad-and-expedition.html">Book 19: The Book of Jihad and Expedition (Kitab A...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-20-book-on-government-kitab-al.html">Book 20: The Book on Government (Kitab Al-Imara)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-21-book-of-games-and-animals-which.html">Book 21: The Book of Games and the Animals which M...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-22-book-of-sacrifices-kitab-al.html">Book 22: The Book of Sacrifices (Kitab Al-Adahi)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-23-book-of-drinks-kitab-al-ashriba.html">Book 23: The Book of Drinks (Kitab Al-Ashriba)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-24-book-pertaining-to-clothes-and.html">Book 24: The Book Pertaining to Clothes and Decora...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-25-book-on-general-behaviour-kitab.html">Book 25: The Book on General Behaviour (Kitab Al-A...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-26-book-on-salutations-and.html">Book 26: The Book on Salutations and Greetings (Ki...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-27-book-concerning-use-of-correct.html">Book 27: The Book Concerning the Use of Correct Wo...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-28-book-of-poetry-kitab-al-shir.html">Book 28: The Book of Poetry (Kitab Al-Sh`ir)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-29-book-of-vision-kitab-al-ruya.html">Book 29: The Book of Vision (Kitab Al-Ruya)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-30-book-pertaining-to-excellent.html">Book 30: The Book Pertaining to the Excellent Qual...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-31-book-pertaining-to-merits-of.html">Book 31: The Book Pertaining to the Merits of the ...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-32-book-of-virtue-good-manners-and.html">Book 32: The Book of Virtue, Good Manners and Join...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-33-book-of-destiny-kitab-ul-qadr.html">Book 33: The Book of Destiny (Kitab-ul-Qadr)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-34-book-of-knowledge-kitab-al-ilm.html">Book 34: The Book of Knowledge (Kitab Al-`Ilm)</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-35-book-pertaining-to-remembrance.html">Book 35: The Book Pertaining to the Remembrance of...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-36-book-of-heart-melting.html">Book 36: The Book of Heart-Melting Traditions (Kit...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-37-book-pertaining-to-repentance.html">Book 37: The Book Pertaining to Repentance and Exh...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-38-pertaining-to-charateristics-of.html">Book 38: Pertaining To The Charateristics Of The H...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-39-book-giving-description-of-day.html">Book 39: The Book Giving Description of the Day of...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-40-book-pertaining-to-paradise-its.html">Book 40: The Book Pertaining to Paradise, Its Desc...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-41-book-pertaining-to-turmoil-and.html">Book 41: The Book Pertaining to the Turmoil and Po...</a><br /></li><li style="font-weight: bold;"><a href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-42-book-pertaining-to-piety-and.html">Book 42: The Book Pertaining to Piety and Softenin...</a><br /></li><li><a style="font-weight: bold;" href="http://muslimshareef.blogspot.com/2008/03/book-43-book-of-commentary-kitab-al.html">Book 43: The Book of Commentary (Kitab Al-Tafsir)</a><br /></li></ul><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-7392643615578697052?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-9990511775037104892008-03-10T10:18:00.000-07:002008-03-10T10:19:50.716-07:00Book 43: The Book of Commentary (Kitab Al-Tafsir)<p><strong> Chapter 1: </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7151"> Book 043, Number 7151: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammim b. Munabbih reported: This is what Abu Huraira reported to us from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and in this connection he narrated some of the ahadith and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: It was said to people of Israel: Enter this land saying Hitta (Remove Thou from us the burden of our sins), whereupon We would forgive you your sins, but they twisted (this statement) and entered the gate dragging upon their breech and said: The" grain in the ear."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7152"> Book 043, Number 7152: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, sent revelation to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) just before his death in quick succession until he left for his heavenly home, and the day when he died, he received the revelation profusely.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7153"> Book 043, Number 7153: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Tariq b. Shihab reported that a Jew said to'Umar: You recite a verse which, if it had been revealed in relation to us, we would have taken that day as the day of rejoicing. Thereupon 'Umar said: I know where it was revealed and on the day when it was revealed and where Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had been at that time when it was revealed. It was revealed on the day of 'Arafa (ninth of Dhu'l Hijjah) and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had been staying in 'Arafat. Sufyan said: I doubt, whether it was Friday or not (and the verse referred to) is this:" Today I have perfected your religion for you and completed My favours upon you" (v. 4).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7154"> Book 043, Number 7154: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Tariq b. Shihab reported that a Jew said to 'Umar: If this verse were revealed in relation to the Jews (i. e." This day I have perfected your religion for you and have completed My favours for you and have chosen for you al-Islam as religion" ) we would have taken the day of rejoicing on which this verse was revealed. Thereupon 'Umar said: I know the day on which it was revealed and the hour when it was revealed and where Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had been when it was revealed. It was revealed on the night of Friday and we were in 'Arafat with Alleh's Messenger (may peace be upon him) at that time.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7155"> Book 043, Number 7155: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Tariq b. Shihab reported that a Jew came to 'Umar and said: Commander of the Faithful, there is a verse in your Book, which you recite. Had it been revealed in connection with the Jews, we would have taken it as the day of rejoicing. Thereupon he said: Which verse do you mean? He replied:" This day I have perfected your religion for you and I have completed My favours upon you and I have chosen al-Islam as religion for you." Umar said, I know the day when it was revealed and the place where it was revealed. It was revealed to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) at 'Arafat on Friday.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7156"> Book 043, Number 7156: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Urwa b. Zubair reported that he asked 'A'isha about the words of Allah:" If you fear that you will not be able to maintain equity amongst the orphan girls, then marry (those) you like from amongst the women two, three or four." She said: O, the son of my sister, the orphan girl is one who is under the patronage of her guardian and she shares with him in his property and her property and beauty fascinate him and her guardian makes up his mind to marry her without giving her due share of the wedding money and is not prepared (to pay so much amount) which anyone else is prepared to pay and so Allah has forbidden to marry these girls but in case when equity is observed as regards the wedding money and they are prepared to pay them the full amount of the wedding money and Allah commanded to marry other women besides them according to the liking of their heart. 'Urwa reported that 'A'isha said that people began to seek verdict from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) after the revelation of this verse about them (orphan girls) and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse:" They asked thee verdict about women; say: Allah gives verdict to you in regard to them and what is recited to you in the Book about orphan woman, whom you give not what is ordained for them while you like to marry them" (iv. 126). She said: The wording of Allah" what is recited to you" in the Book means the first verse, i. e." if you fear that you may not be able to observe equity in case of an orphan woman, marry what you like in case of woman" (iv. 3). 'A'isha said: (And as for this verse [iv. 126], i. e. and you intend" to marry one of them from amongst the orphan girls" it pertains to one who is in charge (of orphans) having small amount of wealth and less beauty and they have been forbidden that they should marry what they like of her wealth and beauty out of the orphan girls, but with equity, because of their disliking for them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7157"> Book 043, Number 7157: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Urwa reported that he asked 'A'isha about the words of Allah:" If you fear that you will not be able to observe equity in case of orphan girls" ; the rest of the hadith is the same but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7158"> Book 043, Number 7158: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha said that as for the words of Allah:" If you fear that you would not be able to observe equity in case of orphan girls)," it was revealed in reference to a person who had an orphan girl (as his ward) and he was her guardian, and her heir, and she possessed property, but there was none to contend on her behalf except her ownself. And he (her guardian) did not give her in marriage because of her property and he tortured her and ill-treated her, it was in relation to her that (Allah said: )" If you fear that you would not be able to observe equity in case of orphan girls, then marry whom you like among women," i. e. whatever I have made lawful for you and leave her whom you are putting to torture.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7159"> Book 043, Number 7159: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha said in connection with His words (those of Allah):" What is recited to you in the Book about orphan women whom you give not what is ordained for them, while you like to marry them," these were revealed in connection with an orphan girl who was in the charge of the person and she shared with him in his property and he was reluctant to marry her himself and was also unwilling to marry her to someone else (fearing) that (that person) would share in his property (as the husband of that girl), preventing her to marry, neither marrying her himself nor marrying her to another person.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7160"> Book 043, Number 7160: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hisham reported that 'A'isha said in connection with the words of Allah:" They ask thee the religious verdict about women, say: Allah gives you the verdict about them" (iv. 126), that these relate to an orphan girl who is in charge of the person and she shares with him in his property (as a heir) even in the date-palm trees and he is reluctant to give her hand in marriage to any other person lest he (her husband) should partake of his property, and thus keep her in a lingering state.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7161"> Book 043, Number 7161: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hisham reported on the authority of his father that 'A'isha said in connection with His (Allah's) words:" And whoever is poor let him take reasonably (out of it)" that it was revealed in connection with the custodian of the property of an orphan, who is in charge of her and looks after her; In case he is poor, he is allowed to eat out of that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7162"> Book 043, Number 7162: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported in connection with the words of Allah, the Exalted:" He who is rich should abstain, and he who is poor may reasonably eat (out of it)" that this was revealed in relation to the guardian of an orphan who is poor; he may get out of that what is reasonable keeping in view his own status of solvency.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7163"> Book 043, Number 7163: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7164"> Book 043, Number 7164: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that these words of Allah:" When they came upon you from above you and from below you and when the eyes turned dull and the hearts rose up to the throats" (xxxiii. 10) pertain to the day of Ditch.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7165"> Book 043, Number 7165: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha said in connection with the verse:" And if a woman has reason to fear ill-treatment from her husband or that he might turn away from her" (iv. 128) that it was revealed in case of a woman who had long association with a person (as his wife) and now he intends to divorce her and she says: Do not divorce me, but retain me (as wife in your house) and you are permitted to live with another wife. It is in this context that this verse was revealed.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7166"> Book 043, Number 7166: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha said in connection with these words of Allah, the Exalted and Glorious:" And if a woman has reason to fear ill-treatment from her husband or that he might turn away from her" that it was revealed in case of a woman who lived with a person and perhaps he does not want to prolong (his relationship with her) whereas she has had sexual relationship with him (and as a result thereof) she got a child from him and she does not like that she should be divorced, so she says to him: I permit you to live with the other wife.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7167"> Book 043, Number 7167: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Urwa reported on the authority of his father that 'A'isha said to him: O, the son of my sister, the Muslims were commanded to seek forgiveness for the Companions of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) but they reviled him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7168"> Book 043, Number 7168: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Abu Usama with the same chain of narrators.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7169"> Book 043, Number 7169: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sa'id b. Jubair reported: The inhabitants of Kufa differed in regard to this verse:" But whoever slays another believer intentionally, his requital shall be Hell" (iv. 92), so I went to Ibn 'Abbas and asked him about it, whereupon he said: This has been revealed and nothing abrogated it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7170"> Book 043, Number 7170: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of narrators but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7171"> Book 043, Number 7171: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sa'id b. Jubair reported: 'Abd al Rahman b. Abzi commanded me that I should ask Ibn 'Abbas about these two verses:" He who slays a believer intentionally his requital shall be Hell where he would abide for ever" (iv. 92). So, I asked him and he said: Nothing has abrogated it. And as for this verse:" And they who call not upon another god with Allah and slay not the soul which Allah has forbidden, except in the cause of justice" (xxv. 68), he (Ibn Abbas) said: This has been revealed in regard to the polytheists."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7172"> Book 043, Number 7172: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Abbas said: This verse was revealed in Mecca:" And they who call not upon another god with Allah and slay not the soul which Allah has forbidden except in the cause of justice" up to the word Muhdana (abased). Thereupon the polytheists said: Islam is of no avail to us for we have made peer with Allah and we killed the soul which Allah had forbidden to do and we committed debauchery, and it was (on this occasion) that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse:" Except him who repents and believes and does good deeds" up to the end Ibn 'Abbis says: He who enters the fold of Islam and understands its command and then kills the soul there is no repentance for him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7173"> Book 043, Number 7173: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sa'id b. Jubair reported: I said to Ibn Abbas: Will the repentance of that person be accepted who kills a believer intentionally? He said: No. I recited to him this verse of Sura al-Furqan (xix.):" And those who call not upon another god with Allah and slay not the soul which Allah has forbidden except in the cause of justice" to the end of the verse. He said: This is a Meccan verse which has been abrogated by a verse revealed at Medina:" He who slays a believer intentionally, for him is the requital of Hell-Fire where he would abide for ever," and in the narration of Ibn Hisham (the words are): I recited to him this verse of Sura al-Furqan:" Except one who made repentance."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7174"> Book 043, Number 7174: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ubaidullah b. 'Abdullah b. 'Utba reported: Ibn Abbas said to me: Do you know-and in the words of Harun (another narrator): Are you aware of-the last Sura which was revealed in the Qur'an as a whole? I said: Yes," When came the help from Allah and the victory" (cx.). Thereupon, he said: You have told the truth. And in the narration of Abu Shaiba (the words are): Do you know the Sura? And he did not mention the words" the last one".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7175"> Book 043, Number 7175: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been reported on the authority of Abu 'Umais through the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7176"> Book 043, Number 7176: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Abbas reported that some Muslims met a person with a small flock of sheep. He said: As-Salam-o-'Alaikum. They caught hold of him and killed him and took possession of his flock. Then this verse was revealed:" He who meets you and extends you salutations, don't say: You are not a Muslim" (iv. 94). Ibn 'Abbas, however, recited the word as-Salam instead of" as-Salam".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7177"> Book 043, Number 7177: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Bara' reported: When the Ansar performed the Pilgrimage, they did not enter their houses but from behind. A person from the Ansar came and he began to enter from his door but it was said to him (why he was doing something in contravention to the common practice of coming to the houses from behind). Then this verse was revealed." Piety is not that you come to the doors from behind" (ii. 189).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: PERTAINING TO THE VERSE: 'HAS NOT THE TIME YET COME FOR THE BELIEVERS THAT THEIR HEARTS SHOULD BE HUMBLE FOR THE REMEMBRANCE OF ALLAH?" (lvii. 16) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7178"> Book 043, Number 7178: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Ibn Mas'ud said: Since our acceptance of Islam and the revelation of this verse in which Allah has shown annoyance to us:" Has not the time yet come for the believers that their hearts should be humble for the remembrance of Allah?" (lvii. 16), there was a gap of four years.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: PERTAINING TO THE WORDS OF ALLAH:" ADORN YOURSELF AT EVERY PLACE OF WORSHIP" (vii. 31) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7179"> Book 043, Number 7179: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Abbas reported: During the pre-Islamic days women circumambulated the Ka'ba nakedly, and said: Who would provide cloth to cover the one who is circumambulating the Ka'ba so that she would cover her private parts? And then she would say: Today will be exposed the whole or the part and what is exposed I shall not make it lawful. It was in this connection that the verse was revealed:" Adorn yourself at every place of worship" (vii. 31).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: COMPEL NOT YOUR SLAVE-GIRLS TO PROSTITUTION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7180"> Book 043, Number 7180: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported that 'Abdullah b. Ubayy b. Salul used to say to his slave-girl: Go and fetch something for us by committing prostitution. It was in this connection that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse:" And compel not your slave-girls to prostitution when they desire to keep chaste in order to seek the frail goods of this world's life, and whoever compels them, then surely after their compulsion Allah is Forgiving, Merciful" (xxiv. 33).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7181"> Book 043, Number 7181: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported that 'Abdullah b. Ubayy b. Salul had two slave-girls; one was called Musaika and the other one was called Umaima and he compelled them to prostitution (for which'Abdullah b. Ubayy b. Salul compelled them). They made a complaint about this to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and it was upon this that this verse was revealed:" And compel not your slave-girls to prostitute" up to the words:" Allah is Forgiving, Merciful."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: PERTAINING TO THE WORDS OF ALLAH:" THOSE WHOM THEY CALL UPON, THEMSELVES SEEK THE MEANS OF ACCESS TO THEIR LORD" (xvii. 57) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7182"> Book 043, Number 7182: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported in connection with the words of Allah, the Exalted and Glorious:" Those to whom they call upon, themselves seek the means or access to their Lord as to whoever of them becomes nearest" (xvii. 57) that it related to a party of Jinn who were being worshipped and they embraced Islam but those who worshipped them kept on worshipping them (though the Jinn whom the misguided people worshipped had become Muslims). It was then that this verse was revealed.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7183"> Book 043, Number 7183: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported in connection with the verse:" Those whom they call upon, themselves seek the means of access to their Lord," that it related to a group of people who worshipped a party amongst the Jinn. The group from amongst the Jinn embraced Islam, but the people kept worshipping them as they did before, and it was (on this occasion) that the verse was revealed:" Those whom they call upon, themselves seek the means of access to their Lord." This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sulaimin with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7184"> Book 043, Number 7184: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Mas'ud said in connection with the verse:" Those whom they call upon, themselves seek the means of access to their Lord," that that verse was revealed in connection with a party of Arabs who used to worship a group amnogst the jinn; the jinn embraced Islam but the people kept worshipping them without being conscious of it. Then this verse was revealed:" Those whom they call upon, themselves seek the means of access to their Lord."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: PERTAINING TO SURAS TAUBA, AL-ANFAL AND HASHR </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7185"> Book 043, Number 7185: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sa'id b. Jubair reported: I said to Ibn 'Abbas about Sura Tauba, whereupon he said: As for Sura Tauba, it is meant to humiliate (the non-believers and the hypocrites). There is constantly revealed in it (the pronoun) minhum (of them) and minhom (of them, i. e. such is the condition of some of them) till they (the Muslims) thought that none would be left unmentioned out of them who would not be blamed (for one fault or the other). I again said: What about Sura Anfal? He said: It pertains to the Battle of Badr. I again asked him about Sura al-Hashr. He said: It was revealed in connection with (the tribe) of Banu Nadir.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: PERTAINING TO THE PROHIBITION OF WINE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7186"> Book 043, Number 7186: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported that Umar delivered a sermon on the pulpit of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and he praised Allah and lauded Him and then said: Now coming to the point. Behold I when the command pertaining to the prohibition of wine was revealed, it was prepared from five things: from wheat, barley, date, grape, honey; and wine is that which clouds the intellect; and O people, I wish Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) could have explained to us in (more) detail the laws pertaining to the inheritance of the grandfather, about one who dies leaving no issue, and some of the problems pertaining to interest.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7187"> Book 043, Number 7187: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported: I heard 'Umar b. Khattab delivering sermon on the pulpit ol Allah's messenger (may peace be upon him) and saying': Now, coming to the point, O people, there was revealed (the command pertaining to the prohibition of wine) and it was prepared (at that time) out of five things: grape, date, honey, wheat, barley, and wine is that which clouds the intellect, and, O people, I wish Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had explained to us in greater detail three things: the inheritance of the grandfather, of one who dies without leaving any issue, and some of the problems of interest.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7188"> Book 043, Number 7188: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the same authority but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: PERTAINING TO THE VERSE:" THESE TWO ADVERSARIES WHO DISPUTE ABOUT THEIR LORD" (xxii. 19) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7189"> Book 043, Number 7189: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Dharr took an oath that this verse:" These two adversaries who dispute about their Lord" (xxii. 19) was revealed in connection with those who on the Day of Badr came out (of rows to fight against the non-believers and they were) Hamza, 'Ali, 'Ubaida b. Harith (from the side of the Muslims) and 'Utba and Shaiba, both of them the sons of Rabi'a and Walid b. 'Utba (from the side of the non-believers of Mecca).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="043.7190"> Book 043, Number 7190: </a> </em> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Dharr through another chain of transmitters.</p><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-999051177503710489?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-87605745262814340192008-03-10T10:16:00.000-07:002008-03-10T10:17:52.818-07:00Book 42: The Book Pertaining to Piety and Softening of Hearts (Kitab Al-Zuhd wa Al-Raqa'iq)<p><strong> Chapter 1: </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7058"> Book 042, Number 7058: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The world is a prison-house for a believer and Paradise for a non-believer.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7059"> Book 042, Number 7059: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Abdullah reported that Allah's Apostle (may p (-ace be upon him) happened to walk through the bazar coming from the side of 'Aliya and the people were on both his sides. There he found a dead lamb with very short ears. He took hold of his ear and said: Who amongst you would like to have this for a dirham? They said: We do not like to have it even for less than that as it is of no use to us. He said: Do you wish to have it (free of any cost)? They said: By Allah, even if it were alive (we would not have liked to possess that), for there is detect in it as its ear is very short; now it is dead also. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: By Allah, this world is more insignificant in the eye of Allah as it (this dead lamb) is in your eye.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7060"> Book 042, Number 7060: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) narrating a hadith like this with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7061"> Book 042, Number 7061: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mutarrif reported on the authority of his father: I came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as he was reciting:" Abundance diverts you" (cii. 1). He said: The son of Adam claims: My wealth, my wealth. And he (the Holy Prophet) said: O son of Adam. is there anything as your belonging except that which you consumed, which you utilised, or which you wore and then it was worn out or you gave as charity and sent it forward?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7062"> Book 042, Number 7062: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mutarrif reported on the authority of his father: I went to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7063"> Book 042, Number 7063: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A servant says, My wealth. my wealth, but out of his wealth three things are only his: whatever he eats and makes use of or by means of which he dresses himself and it wears out or he gives as charity, and this is what he stored for himself (as a reward for the Hereafter), and what is beyond this (it is of no use to you) because you are to depart and leave it for other people. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of al-'Ala' b. 'Abd al-Rahman with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7064"> Book 042, Number 7064: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: Three things follow the bier of a dead man. two of them come back and one is left with him: the members of his family. wealth and his-good deeds. The members of his family and wealth come back and the deeds alone are left with him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7065"> Book 042, Number 7065: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Amr b. 'Auf, who was an ally of Banu 'Amir b. Luwayy (and he was one amongst them) who participated in Badr along with Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him). reported that, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent Abu Ubaida b. Jarrah to Bahrain for collecting Jizya and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had made a truce with the people of Bahrain and had appointed 'Ala' b. Hadrami and Abu Ubaida (for this purpose). They came with wealth from Bahrain and the Ansar beard about the arrival of Abu Ubaida and they had observed the dawn prayer along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had finished the prayer they (the Ansar) came before him and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) smiled as he saw them and then said: I think you have heard about the arrival of Abu Ubaida with goods from Bahrain. They said: Allah's Messenger. yes, it is so. Thereupon he said: Be happy and be hopeful of that what gives you delight. By Allah, it is not the poverty about which I fear in regard to you but I am afraid in your case that (the worldly) riches way be given to you as were given to those who had gone before you and you begin to vie with one another for them as they vied for them. and these may destroy you as these destroyed them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7066"> Book 042, Number 7066: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri as reported by Yunus with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7067"> Book 042, Number 7067: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-As reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: How would you be,0 people. when Persia and Rome would be conquered for you? 'Abd at-Rahman b Auf said: We would say as Allah has commanded us and we would express our gratitude to Allah Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Nothing else besides it? You would (in fact) vie with one another, then you would feel jealous. then your relations would be estranged and then you will bear enmity against one another. or something to the same effect. Then you would go to the poor emigrants and would make some the masters of the others.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7068"> Book 042, Number 7068: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When one of you looks at one who stands at a higher level than you in regard to wealth and physical structure he should also see one who stands at a lower level than you in regard to these things (in which he stands) at a hi-her level (as compared to him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7069"> Book 042, Number 7069: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7070"> Book 042, Number 7070: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Look at those who stand at a lower level than you but don't look at those who stand at a higher level than you, for this would make the favours (conferred upon you by Allah) insignificant (in your eyes). Abu Mu'awiya said: Upon you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7071"> Book 042, Number 7071: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira, narrated that he beard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There were three persons in Bani Isra'il, one suffering from leprosy, the other bald-headed and the third one blind. Allah decided to test them. So He sent an angel who came to one who was suffering from leprosy and said: Which thing do you like most? He said: Beautiful colour and fine skin and removal of that which makes me detestable in the eye of people. He wiped him and his illness was no more and he was conferred upon beautiful colour and beautiful skin. He (the angel) again said: Which property do you like most? He said: Camels, or he said: The cow the narrator is, however, doubtful about it, but (out of the persons) suffering from leprosy or baldness one of them definitely said: The came]. And the other one said: Cow. And he (one who demanded came]) was bestowed upon a she-camel, in an advanced stage of pregnancy, and while giving he said: May Allah bless you in this I Then he came to the bald-headed person and said: Which thing do you like most? He said: Beautiful hair and that (this baldness) may be removed from me because of which people hate me He wiped his body and his illness was removed and he was bestowed upon beautiful hair, and the angel said: Which wealth do you like most? He said: The cow. And he was given a pregnant cow and while handing it over to him he (the angel) said: May Allah bless you in this I Then he came to the blind man and he said: Which thing do you like most? He said: Allah should restore my eyesight so that I should be able to see people with the help of that. He wiped his body and Allah restored to him his eyesight, and he (the angel) also said: Which wealth do you like most? He said. The flock of sheep. And he was given a pregnant goat and that gave birth to young ones and it so happened that one valley abounded in camels and the other one in goats and the third one in sheep. He then came to one suffering from leprosy in his (old) form and shape and he said: I am a poor person and my provision has run short in my journey and there is none to take me to my destination except with the help of Allah and your favour. I beg of you in His name Who gave you fine colour and fine skin, and the camel in the shape of wealth (to confer upon me) a camel which should carry me in my journey. He said: I have many responsibilities to discharge. Thereupon he said: I perceive as if I recognise you. Were you not suffering from leprosy whom people hated and you were a destitude and Allah conferred upon you (wealth) He said: I have inherited this property from my forefathers. Thereupon he said: If you are a liar may Allah change you to that very position in which you had been. He then came to the one who was bald-headed in his (old) form and said to him the same what he had said to him (one suffering from leprosy) and he gave him the same reply as he had given him and he said: If you 'are a liar, may Allah turn you to your previous position in which you had been. And then he came to the blind man in his (old) form and shape and he said: I am a destitute person and a wayfarer. My provision have ran short and today there is no way to reach the destination but with the help of Allah and then with your help and I beg of you in the (name) of One Who restored your eyesight and gave you the flock of sheep to give me a sheep by which I should be able to make my provisions for the journey. He said: I was blind and Allah restored to me my eyesight; you take whatever you like and leave whatever you like. By Allah. I shall not stand in your way today for what you take in the name of God. Thereupon, he said: You keep with you what you have (in your possession). The fact is that you three were put to test and Allah is well pleased with you and He is annoyed with your companions.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7072"> Book 042, Number 7072: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> It is reported on the authority of Amir b. Sa'd that Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas was in the fold of his camels that his son 'Umar came to him. When Sa'd saw him he said: I seek refuge with Allah from the mischief of this rider. And as he got down he said to him: You are busy with your camels and your sheep and you have abandoned people who are contending with one another for kingdom. Sa'd struck his chest and said: Keep quite. I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah loves the servant who is God-conscious and is free from want and is hidden (from the view of people).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7073"> Book 042, Number 7073: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas is reported to have, said: By Allah, I am the first person amongst the Arabs to throw an arrow in the cause of Allah and we used to go with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and there was no food for us to eat but only the leaves of hubla and samur trees (they are wild trees) and as a result thereof one amongst us would relieve himself as does the goat. (How strange it is) that now the people of Banu Asad (the progeny of Zubair) instruct me in religion and try to impose punishment upon me (in regard to it). If it is so (that I am so ignorant of religion), then indeed, I am undone and my deeds have been lost. Ibn Numair, however, did not make a mention of the word (idhan) thus? (in his narration).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7074"> Book 042, Number 7074: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Isma'il b. Khalid with the same chain of transmitters and the words are:" One amongst us would relieve himself as the goats do without anything mixing with its excrement."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7075"> Book 042, Number 7075: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Umair al-'Adawi reported: 'Utba b. Ghazwan delivered us a sermon and he praised Allah and lauded Him, then said: Now coming to the point, verily the world has been given the news of its end and that too quite early. Nothing would be left out of it but only water left in the utensil which its owner leaves, and you are going to shift to an abode which knows no end, and you should shift with the good before you, for we have been told that a stone would be thrown at one side of the Hell and it would go down even for seventy years but would not be able to reach its bottom. By Allah, it would be fully packed. Do you find it something strange, and it has been mentioned that there yawns a distance which one would be able to cover in forty years from one end to another of Paradise, and a day would come when it would be fully packed and you must be knowing that I was the seventh amongst seven who had been with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and we had nothing to eat but the leaves of the tree until the corners of the mouth were injured. We found a sheet which we tore in two and divided between myself and Sa'd b. Malik. I made the lower garment with halt of it and so did Sa'd make the lower garment with half of it and today there is none amongst us who has not become the governor of a city from amongst the cities (of the Islamic Commonwealth) and I seek refuge with Allah that I should consider myself great whereas I am insignificant in the eye of Allah. Prophethood does not remain for ever and its impact fades with the result that it changes eventually into kingship, and you would soon come to know and experience those rulers who would come after us and see (how far they are from religion).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7076"> Book 042, Number 7076: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Khalid b. 'Umair reported and he had seen the pre-Islamic days also, that 'Uqba b. Ghazwan delivered this address and he was the governor of Basra. The rest of the hadith is the same as transmitted by Shaiban.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7077"> Book 042, Number 7077: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Khalid b. Umair reported: I heard Uqba b. Ghazwan as saving: I found myself as the seventh amongst the seven who had been along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). We had nothing to eat but the leaves of hubla (a wild tree) until the corners of our mouths were injured.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7078"> Book 042, Number 7078: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Allah's Messenger, will we be able to see our Lord on the Day of Judgment? He said: Do you feel any difficulty in seeing the sun in the noon when there is no cloud over it? They said: No. He again said: Do you feel any difficulty in seeing the moon on the fourteenth night when there is no cloud over it? They said: No. Thereupon he said: By Allah Who is One in Whose Hand is my life. you will not face any difficulty in seeing your Lord but only so much as you feel in seeing one of them. Then Allah would sit in judgment upon the servant and would say: O, so and so, did I not honour you and make you the chief and provide you the spouse and subdue for you horses, camels, and afforded you an opportunity to rule over your subjects? He would say: Yes. And then it would be said: Did you not think that you would meet Us? And he would say: No. Thereupon He (Allah) would say: Well, We forget you as you forgot Us. Then the second person would be brought for judgment. (And Allah would) say: 0, so and so. did We not honour you and make you the chief and make you pair and subdue for you horses and camels and afford you an opportunity to rule over your subjects? He would say: Yes, my Lord. And He (the Lord) would say: Did you not think that you would be meeting Us? And he would say: No. And then He (Allah) would say: Well, I forget you today as you forgot Us. Then the third -one would be brought and He (Allah) would say to him as He said before. And he (the third person) would say: O, my Lord, I affirmed my faith in Thee and in Thy Book and in Thy Messenger and I observed prayer and fasts and gave charity, and he would speak in good terms like this as he would be able to do. And He (Allah) would say: Well, We will bring our witnesses to you. And the man would think in his mind who would bear witness upon him and then his mouth would be sealed and it would be said to his thighs, to his flesh and to his bones to speak and his thighs. flesh and bones would bear witness to his deeds and it would be done so that he should not be able to make any excuse for himself and he would be a hypocrite and Allah would be annoyed with him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7079"> Book 042, Number 7079: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported: We were in the company of Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) that he smiled and said: Do you know why I laughed? We said: Allah and His Messenger, know best. Thereupon he said: It was because of the (fact that there came to my mind the) talk which the servant would have with his Lord. (on the Day of judgment). He would say: My Lord, have you not guaranteed me protection against injustice? He would say: Yes. Then the servant would say: I do not deem valid any witness against me but my own self, and He would say: Well, enough would he the witness of your self against you and that of the two angels who had been appointed to record your deeds. Then the seal would be set upon his mouth and it would be said to his hands and feet to speak and they would speak of his deeds. Then the mouth would be made free to talk, he would say (to the bands and feet): Be away, let there be curse of Allah upon you. It was for your safety that I contended.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7080"> Book 042, Number 7080: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: O Allah, make for the family of Muhammad the provision which is a bare subsistence.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7081"> Book 042, Number 7081: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: 0 Allah, provide for the, family of Muhammad their subsistence, and in the narration transmitted on the authority of 'Amr (the words are):" O Allah, provide us subsistence"</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7082"> Book 042, Number 7082: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Umara b. al-Qa'qa' reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters but instead of the word" qut" (bare subsistence) there has been used the word" Kafaf" (adequate means to meet the needs).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7083"> Book 042, Number 7083: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: Never had the family of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) eaten to the fill since their, arrival in Medina with the bread of wheat for three successive nights until his (Holy Prophet's) death.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7084"> Book 042, Number 7084: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Never did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) eat to his fill the bread of wheat for three successive days until he had run the course of his life.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7085"> Book 042, Number 7085: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: Never did the family of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) eat to the fill the bread of barley for two successive days until Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) died.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7086"> Book 042, Number 7086: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: Never could the family of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) (afford to cat to the fill) the bread of wheat beyond three days (successively).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7087"> Book 042, Number 7087: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: Never could the family of Muhammad (may peace. be upon him) (afford to eat) the bread of wheat for three (successive days) until he ran the course of his life.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7088"> Book 042, Number 7088: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: Never could the family of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) (afford to eat) the bread of wheat for two days successively. Even (out of these two days) one (was such wherein he could get) only a date.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7089"> Book 042, Number 7089: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: We the family of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) used to spend (the whole) month in which we (did not need to) kindle the fire as (we had nothing to cook) ; we had only dates and water (to fill our bellies).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7090"> Book 042, Number 7090: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are):" We used to spend-" And he did not make a mention of the family of Muhammad (may peace be upon him), and Abu Kuraib made this addition to his hadith which was transmitted on the authority of Ibn Numair (and the words are):" But this that there was brought to us some meat."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7091"> Book 042, Number 7091: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) died (in such a state) that there had been nothing in my wooden tub which a living being could afford to eat but a handful of barley therein. I had been eating out of that for a fairly long duration when I thought of measuring it and it was almost finished.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7092"> Book 042, Number 7092: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha used to say to 'Urwa: Son of my sister, by Allah, I used to see the new moon, then the new moon, then the new moon, i. e. three moons in two months, and fire was not kindled in the house of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). I ('Urwa) said: Auntie, then what were your means of sustenance? She said: Dates and water. But it (so happened) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had some Ansar as his neighbours and they had milch animals and they used to send to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) some milk of their (animals) and he served that to us.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7093"> Book 042, Number 7093: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Urwa b. Zubair reported on the authority of 'A'isha, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), that she said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) died (in a state) that it never happened that he could eat to his fill the bread with olive oil twice during a day.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7094"> Book 042, Number 7094: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported this hadith through other chains of transmitters also (and the words are) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) died (in a state) when the people could afford to eat only the dates and water.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7095"> Book 042, Number 7095: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had died in a state that they could afford to cat two things only: water and dates.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7096"> Book 042, Number 7096: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Sufyan and the words are:" We could not afford to eat to the fill even dates and water."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7097"> Book 042, Number 7097: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported: By Him in Whose Hand is my life and Ibn 'Abbad also said: By One in Whose hand is the life of Abu Huraira, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) could not afford to provide adequate food to his family which could (fill their bellies) with bread and wheat for three days successively until he left the world.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7098"> Book 042, Number 7098: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Hazim reported: I saw Abu Huraira point with his finger many a time and saying: By One in Whose Hand is the life of Abu Huraira, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) could not eat to his fill and provide his family bread of wheat beyond three days successively until he left the world.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7099"> Book 042, Number 7099: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Nu'man b. Bashir said: Don't you eat and drink according to your heart's desire, whereas I saw that your Prophet (may peace be upon him) (at times) could not find even an inferior quality of the dates with which he could fill his belly? Qutaiba, however, did not make a mention of It.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7100"> Book 042, Number 7100: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Simak with the same chain of transmitters, with this addition of words:" You are not satisfied with the qualities of dates and butter."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7101"> Book 042, Number 7101: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Simak b. Barb reported: I heard Nu'man deliver an address in which he said that (Hadrat) Umar made a mention of what had fallen to the lot of people out of the material world and he said: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) spend the whole day being upset because of hunger and he could not get even an interior quality of dates with which he could fill his belly.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7102"> Book 042, Number 7102: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abd al-Rahman al-Hubuli reported: I heard that a person asked 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. 'Asas saying: Are we not amongst the destitute of the emigrants? Abdullah said to him: Have you a spouse with whom you live? He said: Yes. He again said: Then you are amongst the rich. He said: I have a servant also. Thereupon he (Abdullah b. 'Amr b. 'As) said: Then you are amongst the kings.</p> <p> Abu 'Abdal-Rahman reported that three persons came to 'Abdullah b. Amr b. 'As while I was sitting with him and they said: By Allah, we have nothing with us either in the form of provision, riding animals or wealth. Thereupon he said to them: I am prepared to do whatever you like. If you come to us, we would give you what Allah would make available for you. and if you like I would make a mention of your case to the ruler, and if you like you can show patience also. for I have beard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Destitute amongst the emigrants would precede the rich emigrants by forty years in getting into Paradise on the Day of Resurrection. Thereupon they said: We then, show patience and do not ask for anything.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: DO NOT ENTER BUT WFEPINGLY THE HABITATIONS OF THOSE WHO COMMITIED ATROKITIES UPON THEMSELVES </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7103"> Book 042, Number 7103: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said in connection with the people of Hijr (Thamud): Do not enter but weepingly (the habitations) of these people who bad been punished by (Allah), and in case you do not feel inclined to weep, then do not enter (these habitations) that you may not meet the same calamity as had fallen to their lot.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7104"> Book 042, Number 7104: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Shihab reported, and he had been talking about the stony abodes of Thamud, and he said: Salim b. 'Abdullah reported that 'Abdullah b. Umar said: We were passing along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) through the habitations of Hijr, and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Do not enter but weepingly the habitations of these persons who committed tyranny among themselves, lest the same calamity should fall upon you as it fell upon them. He then urged his mount to proceed quickly and pass through that valley hurriedly.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7105"> Book 042, Number 7105: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that the people encamped along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in the valley of Hijr, the habitations of Thamud, and they quenched their thirst from the wells thereof and kneaded the flour with it. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded that the water collected for drinking should be spilt and the flour should be given to the camels and commanded them that the water for drinking should be taken from that well where the she-camel (of Hadrat Salih) used to come.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7106"> Book 042, Number 7106: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: BENEVOLENT TREATMENT TO THE WIDOWS, ORPHANS AND THE POOR </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7107"> Book 042, Number 7107: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: One who makes efforts (for earning to be spent) on a widow and the destitute is like a striver in the cause of Allah, and I think he also said: He is like one who constantly stands for prayer and observes fast without breaking it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7108"> Book 042, Number 7108: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: One who looks after the orphan whether he is his relative or not, I and he would be together in Paradise like this, and Malik (explained it) with the gesture by drawing his index finger and middle finger close together.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: EXCELLENCE OF BUILDING MOSQUES </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7109"> Book 042, Number 7109: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah al-Khaulani reported that when Uthman b. 'Affan tried to rebuild the mosque of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) the people began to talk about this. Uthman b. 'Affan said: You discuss it very much whereas I have heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who builds a mosque-- and the narrator Bukair said: I think he also said: (for) seeking the pleasure of Allah- Allah would build (a similar house for him in Paradise). and in the narration of Harun (the words are):" A house for him in Paradise."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7110"> Book 042, Number 7110: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mahmud b. Labid reported that 'Uthman b. 'Affan decided to rebuild the mosque (of Allah's Apostle in Medina) but the people did not like this idea and they wished that it should be preserved in the same (old) form. Thereupon he (Hadrat 'Uthman) said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who builds a mosque for Allah, Allah would build for him (a house) in Paradise like it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7111"> Book 042, Number 7111: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ja'far with the same chain of transmitters with this variation (that the words are):" Allah would build for him a house in Paradise."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: CHARITY TO BE GIVEN TO THE POOR OR THE WAYFARERS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7112"> Book 042, Number 7112: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported: While a person was in the wilderness he heard a voice from the cloud (commanding it thus): Irrigate the garden of so and so. (After that the clouds slinked aside and poured water on a stony ground. It filled a channel amongst the channels of that land and that person followed that water and he found a person standing in the garden busy in changing the course of water with the help of a hatchet. He said to him: Servant of Allah, what is your name? he said: So and so. And it was that very name which he had heard from the clouds. and he said to him: Servant of Allah, why do you ask me my name? He said: I beard a voice from the clouds of which It is the downpour, saying: Water the garden of so and to. like your name. What do you do (for the favour) shown to you by Allah in this matter? He said: Now as you state so. I look what yield I get from it. and I give one-third as charity out of it and I and my children eat one-third of it and one-third I return to it as investment.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7113"> Book 042, Number 7113: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Wahb b. Kaisan with the same chain of transmitters but with this change that he said:" I earmark one-third for the poor, the needy and the wayfarers."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: HE WHO ASSOCIATES ONE AS AN OBJECT OF WORSHIP WITH ALLAH IN HIS DEEDS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7114"> Book 042, Number 7114: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as stating that Allah the Most High and Exalted said: I am the One, One Who does not stand in need of a partner. If anyone does anything in which he associates anyone else with Me, I shall abandon him with one whom he associates with Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: THE PROHIBITION OF SIMULATION AND OSTENTATION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7115"> Book 042, Number 7115: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Abbas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone wants to have his deeds widely publicised, Allah will publicise (his humiliation). And if anyone makes a hypocritical display (of his deeds) Allah will make a display of him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7116"> Book 042, Number 7116: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jundub reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who wants to publicise (his deeds), Allah will publicise (his humility), and he who makes a hypocritical display (of his deeds), Allah will make a display of him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7117"> Book 042, Number 7117: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sufyan reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters and he made this addition:" I did not hear anyone saying besides him that it was Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) who had said so."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7118"> Book 042, Number 7118: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Salama b. Kuhail reported: I heard from Jundub but I did not hear him say like this:" I beard Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying this."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7119"> Book 042, Number 7119: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sufyan reported like that as as-Saduq al-Amin al-Walid b. Harb narrated with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: PERTAINING TO THE GUARDING OF TONGUE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7120"> Book 042, Number 7120: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The servant speaks words for which he is sent down to the Hell-Fire farther than the distance between the cast and the west.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7121"> Book 042, Number 7121: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The servant speaks words that he does not understand its repercussions but he sinks down in Hell-Fire farther than the distance between the east and the west.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 9: THE PUNISTIMENT OF ONE WHO COMMANDS OTHERS TO DO GOOD BUT DOES NOT DO IT HIMSELF AND RE FORBIDS OTHERS TO DO EVIL BUT DOES NOT HIMSELF REFRAIN FROM IT </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7122"> Book 042, Number 7122: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Shaqiq reported that it was said to Usama b. Zaid: Why don't you visit 'Uthman and talk to him? Thereupon he said: Do you think that I have not talked to him but that I have made you hear? By Allah. I have talked to him (about things) concerning me and him and I did not like to divulge those things about which I had to take the initiative and I do not say to my ruler:" You are the best among people," after I beard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A man will be brought on the Day of Resurrection and thrown in Hell-Fire and his intestines will pour forth in Hell and he will go round along with them, as an ass goes round the mill. stone. The denizens of Hell would gather round him and say: 0, so and so, what has happened to you? Were you not enjoining us to do what was reputable and forbid us to do what was disreputable? He will say: Of course, it is so; I used to enjoin (upon people) to do what was reputable but did not practise that myself. I had been forbidding people to do what was disreputable, but practised it myself.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7123"> Book 042, Number 7123: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Wa'il reported: I was in the company of Usama b. Zaid that a person said: What prevents you to visit Uthman and talk to him for what he does? The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 10: IT IS FORBIDDEN TO PUBLICISE ONE'S SINS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7124"> Book 042, Number 7124: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: All the people of my Ummah would get pardon for their sins except those who publicise them. And (it means) that a servant should do a deed during the night and tell the people in the morning that he has done so and so, whereas Allah has concealed it. And he does a deed during the day and when it is night he tells the people, whereas Allah has concealed it. Zuhair has used the word hijar for publicising.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 11: SNEEZING AND THE DISAPPROVAL OF YAWNING </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7125"> Book 042, Number 7125: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that two persons sneezed in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He (the Messenger of Allah) invoked mercy for one, and did not invoke for the other. The one for whom he had not prayed said: So and so sneezed and you said: May Allah have mercy upon you. I also sneezed but you did not utter these words for me. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: That person praised Allah, and you did not praise Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7126"> Book 042, Number 7126: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7127"> Book 042, Number 7127: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Burda reported: I visited Abu Musa, as he was in the house of the daughter of Fadl b. 'Abbas. I sneezed but he did not respond to it (by saying): Allah may have mercy upon you. Then she sneezed and he (Fadl b. 'Abbas) said: May Allah have mercy upon you. I came back to my mother and informed her about it, and when he came to her she said: My son sneezed in your presence and you did not say:" Allah may have mercy upon you, and she sneezed and you said for her:" May Allah have mercy upon you." Thereupon he said: Your son sneezed but he did not praise Allah and I did not beg mercy of Allah for him and she sneezed and she praised Allah and so I said: May Allah have mercy upon you, as I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you sneezes he should praise Allah and the other should say: May Allah have mercy upon you, and if he does not praise Allah, no mercy should be begged for him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7128"> Book 042, Number 7128: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Iyas b. Salama b. al-Akwa reported that his father reported to him that he heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: A person sneezed in his presence and he said to him: May Allah have mercy upon you. And he then sneezed for the second time and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: He is suffering from cold (and no response is necessary).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7129"> Book 042, Number 7129: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The yawning as from the devil. So when one of you yawns he should try to restrain it as far as it lies in his power.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7130"> Book 042, Number 7130: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> The son of Abu Said al-Khudri reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When one of you yawns, he should keep his mouth shut with the help of his hand, for it is the devil that enters therein.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7131"> Book 042, Number 7131: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> The son of Abu Said al-Khudri reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When one of you yawns, he should try to restrain it with cue help of his hand since it is the Satan that enters therein.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7132"> Book 042, Number 7132: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> The son of Abu Said al-Khudri reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said. When one of you yawns while engaged in prayer, he should try to restrain so far as it lies in his power, since it is the Satan that enter therein.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7133"> Book 042, Number 7133: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Said al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) a hadith like this through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 12: MISCELLANEOUS AHADITH </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7134"> Book 042, Number 7134: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The Angels were born out of light and the Jinns were born out of the spark of fire and Adam was born as he has been defined (in the Qur'an) for you (i. e. he is fashioned out of clay).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7135"> Book 042, Number 7135: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: A group of Bani Isra'il was lost. I do not know what happened to it, but I think (that it 'underwent a process of metamorphosis) and assumed the shape of rats. Don't you see when the milk of the camel is placed before them, these do not drink and when the milk of goat is placed before them, these do drink. Abu Huraira said: I narrated this very hadith to Ka'b and he said: Did you hear this from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? I (Abu Huraira) said: Yes. He said this again and again, and I said: Have I read Torah? This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Ishaq with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7136"> Book 042, Number 7136: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that the rat (is the result of) metamorphosis (of a group of Bani Isra'il) and the proof of this is that when the milk of goat is placed before it, it drinks it, and when the milk of the camel is placed before it, it would not taste it at all. Ka'b said: Did you hear it from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Thereupon he said: Has Torah been revealed to me?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 13: THE BELIEVER DOES NOT PROVIDE OPPORTUNITY TO BE STUNG TWICE FROM ONE (AND THE SAME) HOLE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7137"> Book 042, Number 7137: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The believer does not allow to be stung twice from one (and the same) hole. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 14: EVERY ACT OF A BELIEVER IS A BLESSING FOR HIM </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7138"> Book 042, Number 7138: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Suhaib reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Strange are the ways of a believer for there is good in every affair of his and this is not the case with anyone else except in the case of a believer for if he has an occasion to feel delight, he thanks (God), thus there is a good for him in it, and if he gets into trouble and shows resignation (and endures it patiently), there is a good for him in it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 15: IT IS PROHIBITED TO PRAISE ANYONE SO MUCH THAT THERE MAY BE FEAR OF HIS BEING INTOXICATED BECAUSE OF THAT </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7139"> Book 042, Number 7139: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakra reported on the authority of his father that a person praised another person in the presence of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: Woe be to thee, you have broken the neck of your friend, you have broken the neck of your friend-he said this twice. If one of you has to praise his friend at all, he should say: I think (him to be) so and Allah knows it well and I do not know the secret of the heart and Allah knows the destined end, and I cannot testify his purity against Allah but (he appears) to be so and so.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7140"> Book 042, Number 7140: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakra reported on the authority of his father that a person was mentioned in the presence of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), and a person said: Allah's Messenger, no person is more excellent than he after Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Woe be to thee, you have broken the neck of your friend, and he said this twice. Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If anyone has to praise his brother at all, he should say: I think him to be so and so, and even on this he should say: I do not consider anyone purer than Allah (considers). This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Shu'ba with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7141"> Book 042, Number 7141: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Musa reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw a person lauding another person or praising him too much. Thereupon he said: You killed him, or you sliced the back of a person.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7142"> Book 042, Number 7142: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Ma'mar reported that a person lauded a ruler amongst the rulers and Miqdad began to throw dust upon him and he said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded us that we should throw dust upon the faces of those who shower too much praise.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7143"> Book 042, Number 7143: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammam b. al-Harith reported that a person began to praise 'Uthman and Miqdad sat upon his knee; and he was a bulky person and began to throw pebbles upon his (flatterer's) face. Thereupon 'Uthman said: What is the matter with you? And he said: Verily, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When you see those who shower (undue) praise (upon others), throw dust upon their faces.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7144"> Book 042, Number 7144: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Miqdad through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 16: THE OLDER ONE IS TO BE PREFERRED </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7145"> Book 042, Number 7145: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: It was shown in a vision that I was rinsing my mouth with miswak and two persons began to contend with one another for getting that miswak. One was older than the other. I gave the miswak to the younger one amongst them, but it was said to me: (Let it be given) to the older one. So I gave it to the older one.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 17: TO STATE HADITH AFTER ITS VERIFICATION AND RECORDING OF" KNOWLEDGE" </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7146"> Book 042, Number 7146: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> It was reported that Abu Huraira used to say: Listen to me, inmate of the apartment; listen to me, inmate of the apartment, while 'A'isha (Allah be pleased with her) had been busy in observing prayer. As she finished prayer, she said to" Urwa: Did you hear his words? And this is how Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to utter (so distinctly) that if one intended to count (the words uttered) he would be able to do so.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7147"> Book 042, Number 7147: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Do not take down anything from me, and he who took down anything from me except the Qur'an, he should efface that and narrate from me, for there is no harm in it and he who attributed any falsehood to me-and Hammam said: I think he also said:" deliberately" -he should in fact find his abode in the Hell-Fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 18: THE STORY OF THE PEOPLE OF THE DITCH, THE MAGICIAN, THE MONK AND THE SLAVE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7148"> Book 042, Number 7148: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Suhaib reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) thus said: There lived a king before you and he had a (court) magician. As he (the magician) grew old, he said to the king: I have grown old, send some young boy to me so that I should teach him magic. He (the king) sent to him a young man so that he should train him (in magic). And on his way (to the magician) he (the young man) found a monk sitting there. He (the young man) listened to his (the monk's) talk and was impressed by it. It became his habit that on his way to the magician he met the monk and set there and he came to the magician (late). He (the magician) beat him because of delay. He made a complaint of that to the monk and he said to him: When you feel afraid of the magician, say: Members of my family had detained me. And when you feel afraid of your family you should say: The magician had detained me. It so happened that there came a huge beast (of prey) and it blocked the way of the people, and he (the young boy) said: I will come to know today whether the magician is superior or the monk is superior. He picked up a stone and said: O Allah, if the affair of the monk is dearer to Thee than the affair of the magician, cause death to this animal so that the people should be able to move about freely. He threw that stone towards it and killed it and the people began to move about (on the path freely). He (the young man) then came to that monk and Informed him and the monk said: Sonny, today you are superior to me. Your affair has come to a stage where I find that you would be soon put to a trial, and in case you are put to a trial don't give my clue. That young man began to treat the blind and those suffering from leprosy and he in fact began to cure people from (all kinds) of illness. When a companion of the king who had gone blind heard about him, he came to him with numerous gifts and said: If you cure me all these things collected together here would be yours. Be said: I myself do not cure anyone. It is Allah Who cures and if you affirm faith in Allah, I shall also supplicate Allah to cure you.</p> <p> He affirmed his faith in Allah and Allah cured him and he came to the king and sat by his side as he used to sit before. The king said to him: Who restored your eyesight? He said: My Lord. Thereupon he said: It means that your Lord is One besides me. He said: My Lord and your Lord is Allah, so he (the king) took hold of him and tormented him till he gave a clue of that boy. The young man was thus summoned and the king said to him: O boy, it has been conveyed to me that you have become so much proficient in your magic that you cure the blind and those suffering from leprosy and you do such and such things. Thereupon he said: I do not cure anyone; it is Allah Who cures, and he (the king) took hold of him and began to torment him. So he gave a clue of the monk. The monk was thus summoned and it was said to him: You should turn back from your religion. He, however, refused to do so. He (ordered) for a saw to be brought (and when it was done) he (the king) placed it in the middle of his head and tore it into parts till a part fell down. Then the courtier of the king was brought and it was said to him: Turn back from your religion. Arid he refused to do so, and the saw was placed in the midst of his head and it was torn till a part fell down. Then that young boy was brought and it was said to him: Turn back from your religion. He refused to do so and he was handed over to a group of his courtiers. And he 'said to them: Take him to such and such mountain; make him climb up that mountain and when you reach its top (ask him to renounce his faith) but if he refuses to do so, then throw him (down the mountain). So they took him and made him climb up the mountain and he said: O Allah, save me from them (in any way) Thou likest and the mountain began to quake and they all fell down and that person came walking to the king. The king said to him: What has happened to your companions? He said: Allah has saved me from them. He again handed him to some of his courtiers and said: Take him and carry him in a small boat and when you reach the middle of the ocean (ask him to renounce) his religion, but if he does not renounce his religion throw him (into the water).</p> <p> So they took him and he said: O Allah, save me from them and what they want to do. It was quite soon that the boat turned over and they were drowned and he came walking to the king, and the king said to him: What has happened to your companions? He said: Allah has saved me from them, and he said to the king: You cannot kill me until you do what I ask you to do. And he said: What is that? He said: You should gather people in a plain and hang me by the trunk (of a tree). Then take hold of an arrow from the quiver and say: In the name of Allah, the Lord of the worlds; then shoot an arrow and if you do that then you would be able to kill me. So he (the king) called the people in an open plain and tied him (the boy) to the trunk of a tree, then he took hold of an arrow from his quiver and then placed the arrow in the bow and then said: In the name of Allah, the Lord of the young boy; he then shot an arrow and it bit his temple. He (the boy) placed his hands upon the temple where the arrow had bit him and he died and the people said: We affirm our faith in the Lord of this young man, we affirm our faith in the Lord of this young man, we affirm our faith in the Lord of this young man. The courtiers came to the king and it was said to him: Do you see that Allah has actually done what you aimed at averting. They (the people) have affirmed their faith in the Lord. He (the king) commanded ditches to be dug at important points in the path. When these ditches were dug, and the fire was lit in them it was said (to the people): He who would not turn back from his (boy's) religion would be thrown in the fire or it would be said to them to jump in that. (The people courted death but did not renounce religion) till a woman came with her child and she felt hesitant in jumping into the fire and the child said to her: 0 mother, endure (this ordeal) for it is the Truth.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 19: THE STORY OF ABU AL-YASAR AND THE LENGTHY HADITH OF JABIR </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7149"> Book 042, Number 7149: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Ubadab. Walid b. Samit reported: I and my father set out in search of knowledge to a tribe of the Ansar before their death (i. e. before the Companions of the Holy Prophet left the world) and I was the first to meet Abu Yasar, a Companion of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and there was a young man with him who carried the record of letters with him and there was a mantle prepared by the tribe of Ma'afiri upon him. And his servant too had a Ma'afiri mantle over him. My father said to him: My uncle, I see the signs of anger or that of agony on your face. He said: Yes, such and such person, the son of so and so, of the tribe of Harami owed me a debt. I went to his family, extended salutations and said: Where is he? They said: He is not here. Then came out to me his son who was at the threshold of his youth. I said to him: Where is your father? He said: No sooner did he hear your sound than he hid himself behind my mother's bedstead. I said to him: Walk out to me, for I know where you are. He came out. I said to him: What prompted you to hide yourself from me? He said: By God, whatever I would say to you would not be a lie. By Allah, I fear that I should tell a lie to you and in case of making promise with you I should break it, as you are the Companion of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). The fact is that I was hard up in regard to money. I said: Do you adjure by Allah? He said: I adjure by Allah. I said: Do you adjure by Allah? He said: I adjure by Allah. I said: Do you adjure by Allah? He said: I adjure by Allah. Then he brought his promissory note and he wrote off (the debt) with his hand and said: Make payment when you find yourself solvent enough to pay me back; if you are not, then there is no liability upon you. These two eyes of mine saw, and he (Abu'I-Yasar) placed his fingers upon his eyes and these two ears of mine heard and my heart retained, and he pointed towards his heart that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who gives time to one who is financially hard up (in the payment of debt) or writes off his debt, Allah will provide him His shadow. I said to him: My uncle, if you get the cloak of your servant and you give him your two clothes, or take his two clothes of Ma'afir and give him your cloak, then there would be one dress for you and one for him.</p> <p> He wiped my head and said: O Allah, bless the son of my brother. O, son of my brother, these two very eyes of mine saw and these two ears of mine listened to and this heart of mine retained this, and he pointed towards the heart that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Feed them (the servants) and clothe them (the servants) what you wear, and if I give him the goods of the world, it is easy for me than this that he should take my virtues on the Day of Resurrection. We went on till we came to Jabir b. Abdullah in the mosque and he was busy in observing prayer in one cloth which he had joined at its opposite ends. I made my way through the people till I sat between him and the Qibla and I said: May Allah have mercy upon you. Do you observe prayer with one cloth on your body whereas your mantle is lying at your side? He pointed me with his hand towards my breast just like this and he separated his fingers and bent them in the shape of a bow. And (he said): I thought that a fool like you should come to me so that he should see me as I do and he should then also do like it. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to us in this very mosque and he had in his hand the twig of the palm-tree and he saw mucus towards the Qibla of the mosque and he erased it with the help of the twig. He then came to us and said: Who amongst you likes that Allah should turn His face away from him? We were afraid. He then again said: Who amongst you likes that Allah should turn His face away from him? We were afraid. He again said: Who amongst you likes that Allah should turn His face away from him? We said: Allah's Messenger, none of us likes it. And he said: If one amongst you stands for prayer, Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, is before him he should not spit in front of him, or on his right side, but should spit on his left side beneath his left foot and if he is impelled to do so all of a sudden (in spite of himself) he should then spit in his cloth and fold it in some part of it. (and he further said: ) Bring some sweet-smelling thing. A young man who belonged to our tribe stood up, went and brought scent in his palm. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) took that and applied it to the end of that twig and then touched the place where there had been mucus. Jabir said: This is why you should apply scent to your mosques.</p> <p> It is reported on the same authority: We set out along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on an expedition of Batn Buwat. He (the Holy Prophet) was in search of al-Majdi b. 'Amr al-Juhani. (We had so meagre equipment) that five. six or seven of us had one camel to ride and so we mounted it turn by turn. Once there wan. the turn of an Ansari to ride upon the camel. He made it kneel down to ride over it (and after having. mounted it), he tried to raise it up but it hesitated. So he said. May there be curse of Allah upon you! Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Who is there to curse his camel? He said: Allah's Messenger, it' is I. Thereupon he said: Get down from the camel and let us not have in our company the cursed one. Don't curse your own selves, nor your children. nor your belongings. There is the possibility that your curse may synchronies with the time when Allah is about to confer upon you what you demand and thus your prayer may be readily responded.</p> <p> It is reported on the same authority: We set out on an expedition along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) until it was evening, and we had been near a. water reservoir of Arabia. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Who would be the person who would go ahead and set right the reservoir and drink water himself and serve us with it? Jabir said: I stood up and said: Allah's Messenger, it is I who am ready to do that. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Who is the person to accompany Jabir? And then Jabbar b. Sakhr stood up. So we went to that well and poured in that tank a bucket or two of water and plastered it with clay and then began to fill it (with water) until it was filled to the brim. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was the first who appeared before us, and he said: Do you (both) permit me to drink water out of it? We said: Yea, Allah's Messenger. He led his camel to drink water and it drank. He then pulled its rein and it stretched its legs and began to urinate. He then took it aside and made it kneel down at another place and then came to the tank and performed ablution. I then got up and performed ablution like the ablution of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and Jabbar b. Sakhr went in order to relieve himself and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) got up to observe prayer and there was a mantle over me. I tried to invert its ends but it was too short (to cover my body easily). It had its borders. I then inverted it (the mantle) and drew its opposite ends and then tied them at my neck. I then came and stood upon the left side of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He caught hold of me and made me go round behind him, until he made me stand on his right side. Then Jabbar b. Sakhr came. He performed ablution and then came and stood on the left side of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) caught hold of our hands together, pushed us back and made us stand behind him. Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) began to look upon me with darting looks, but I did not perceive that. After that I became aware of it and he pointed with the gesture of his hand that I should wrap my loin-cloth. When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had finished the prayer, he said: Jabir! I said: Allah's Messenger, at thy beck and call. He said: When the cloth around you is inadequate, then tie the opposite ends but when it is small, tie it over the lower body.</p> <p> Jabir reported: We set out on an expedition with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and the only means of sustenance for every person amongst us was only one date for a day and we used to chew it. And we struck the leaves with the help of our bow and ate them until the sides of our mouths were injured. It so happened one day that a person was overlooked and not given a date. We carried that person and bore witness to the fact that he had not been given that date so he was offered that and he got up and received that.</p> <p> Jabir reported: We set out on an expedition along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) until we got down at a spacious valley and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went to relieve himself. I followed him with a bucket full of water and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) looked about and he found no privacy but two trees at the end of the valley and Allah's Messenger (may. peace be upon him) went to one of them and took hold of one of its twigs and said: Be thou under my control by the permission of Allah, and so it came under his control like the camel who has its nosestring in the hand of its rider, and then he came to the second tree and took hold of a twig and said: Be thou under my control with the permission of Allah, and it came under his control, and when he came in the middle of the two trees he joined together the two twigs and said: join with the permission of Allah. Jabir said: I was afraid lest Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) should be aware of my nearness and go still farther. And Muhammad b. Abbad has used the word" faitab'd" and I began to talk to myself. And as I saw, I suddenly found Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) before me and the two trees were separated and each one of them was standing at its place. I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) standing for a short time, nodding his head towards right and left. Isma'il pointed towards the right and left with the help of his head (in order to demonstrate how the Holy Prophet had pointed). Then he (the Holy Prophet) came to me and said: Jabir did you see my place where I was standing? I said: Allah's Messenger, yes. He then said: Then you should go to those two trees and cut a twig from each of them and go to that place with them where I was standing and stand there where I was standing and place a twig on the right and a twig on the left. Jabir said: I set out and took hold of a stone and broke it and sharpened it and then I came to those trees and cut a twig from each one of them.</p> <p> I then came dragging them until I stood at the place where Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had been standing and placed a twig on the right and a twig on the left. Then I met him and said: Allah's Messenger, I have done that, but (kindly) explain to me the reason for it. Thereupon he said: I passed by two graves the occupants of which had been undergoing torment. I liked to make intercession for them so that the might be relieved of this torment y as long as these twigs remain fresh. Jabir said: We came back to the (camp of the) army and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Jabir, call people for per- forming wudu. I cried: Come and perform wudu, come and perform wudu, come and perform wudu. I said: Allah's Messenger, there is not even a drop of water in the army camp, and there. was a person who used to cool the water for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in the old water-skin which kept hanging by the twig. He asked me to go to such and such Ansari and ask him to see if there was any water in that skin. I went to him and cast a glance in it but did not find anything but a drop in the mouth of that water-skin and if I were to draw that, the water-skin's,. dried part would suck it up. I came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, I have not found anything in it but a drop of water in the mouth of the water-skin and now if I were to draw that, it would be absorbed. He said: Go and bring that to me. I brought that to him. He took hold of it -and began to utter something which I could not understand and then pressed it with his hand and gave that to me and said: Jabir, announce for the tub to be brought. So I announced that the tub of the army (be brought). It was brought accordingly and I placed it before him (the Holy Prophet). Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) placed his hands in the tub like this: with his fingers stretched out, and then he placed his fingers at the bottom of the tub and said: Jabir, take it (that waters-skin) and pour water over me, by reciting Bismillah, and I poured water and I said: Bismillah, and found water sprouting out between the fingers of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Then that tub gushed forth until it was filled up and the Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Jabir, make an announcement to the effect: He who needs water should take that. Jabir said: The people came and got water until they were all satiated. I said: Is there anyone left who wants to get it? And Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) then lifted up his hand from that tub and it was still full. Then the people made a complaint to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about hunger and he said: May Allah provide you food! We came to the bank of the ocean and the ocean was tossing and it threw out a big animal and we lit fire and cooked it and took it until we had eaten to our heart's content. Jabir said: I and such and such five persons entered Its socket and nobody could see us until we had come out, and we took hold of one of its ribs and twisted it into a sort of arch, then we called the tallest of the persons of the army and the hugest of the camels of the army and it had the big saddle over it, and it could easily pass through it without the rider having need to bend down.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 20: THE ACCOUNT OF PROPHET'S (MAY PEACE BE UPON HIM) EMIGRATION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="042.7150"> Book 042, Number 7150: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported that Abu Bakr Siddlq came to the residence of my father ('Azib) and bought a haudaj from him and said to 'Azib: Send your son to my residence (to carry this haudaj), and my father said to me: Carry it (for him). So I carried it and there went along with him (with Abu Bakr) my father in order to fetch its price and he ('Azib) said to Abu Bakr: Abu Bakr, narrate to me what you both did on the night when you set out on a journey along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He said: We set out during the night and went on walking until it was noon, and the path was vacant and so none passed by that (until) there appeared prominently before us a large rock. It had its shade and the rays of the sun did not reach that place. So we got down at that place. I then went to the rock and levelled the ground with my hands at the place where the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) would take rest under its shade. I then set the bedding and said: Allah's Messenger, go to sleep and I shall keep a watch around you. I went out and watched around him. There we saw a shepherd moving towards that rock with his flock and he intended what we intended (i. e. taking rest). I met him and said to him: Young boy, to which place do you belong? He said: I am a person from Medina. I said, is there any milk in the udders of your sheep and goats? He said: Yes. He took hold of a goat, and I said to him: Clean the udder well so that it should be free from hair, dust and impurity. I saw al-Bara' striking his hand upon the other (to give an indication) how he did that. He milked the goat for me in a wooden cup which he had with him and I had with me a bucket in which I kept water for drinking and for performing ablution. I came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and did not like to awaken him from sleep but he was accidentally startled from the sleep. I poured water upon the milk (till It was cold) and I said: Allah's Messenger, take this milk. He then took It and I was delighted and he (the Holy Prophet) said: Is now not the time to march on? I said: Of course. So he marched on after the sun had passed the meridian and Suraqa b. Malik pursued us and we had been walking on soft, level ground. I said: Allah's Messenger, we are about to be overtaken by them. Thereupon he said: Be not grieved. Verily, Allah is with us. Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) cursed him and his horse sank into the earth. I think he also said: I know you have hurled curse upon me. So supplicate Allah for me and I take an oath that I shall turn everyone away who would come in search of you. So he (Allah's Messenger) supplicated Allah and he was rescued and he came back and to everyone he met, he said: I have combed all this side. In short, he diverted everyone whom he met and he in fact fulfilled his promise.</p> <p> Al-Bara' reported: Abu Bakr purchased a saddle from me for thirteen dirhams; the rest of the hadith is the same, and in the narration of Uthman b. 'Umar, the words are: He (Suraqa b. Malik) drew near Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and he (the Holy Prophet) cursed him and his camel sank in the earth up to the belly and he jumped from that and said: Muhammad, I am fully aware of It that it is your doing. Supplicate Allah that He should rescue me from it in which I am (pitchforked) and I give you a solemn pledge that I shall keep this as a secret from all those who are coming after me. Take hold of an arrow out of it (quiver) for you will find my camels and my slaves at such and such place and you can get whatever you need (on showing this arrow). He (the Holy Prophet) said: I don't need your camels. And we (the Holy Prophet and Abu Bakr) came to Medina during the night and the people began to contend as to where Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) should reside and he encamped in the tribe of Najjar who were related to 'Abd ul-Muttalib from the side of mother. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) honoured them, then people climbed upon house-top and women also and boys scattered in the way, and they were all crying: Muhammad, Messenger of Allah, Muhammad, Messenger of Allah.</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-8760574526281434019?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-52043103326380652952008-03-10T10:15:00.000-07:002008-03-10T10:16:47.130-07:00Book 41: The Book Pertaining to the Turmoil and Portents of the Last Hour (Kitab Al-Fitan wa Ashrat As-Sa`ah)<p><strong> Chapter 1: </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6881"> Book 041, Number 6881: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Zainab bint Jahsh reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) got up from sleep saying: There is no god but Allah; there is a destruction in store for Arabia because of turmoil which is at hand, the barrier of Gog and Magog has opened so much. And Sufyan made a sign of ten with the help of his hand (in order to indicate the width of the gap) and I said: Allah's Messenger, would we be perished in spite of the fact that there would be good people amongst us? Thereupon he said: Of course, but only when the evil predominates.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6882"> Book 041, Number 6882: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zainab bint Jahsh with a slight variation in the chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6883"> Book 041, Number 6883: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Zainab bint Jahsh, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported that one day Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came out in a state of excitement with his face quite red. And he was saying: There is no god but Allah; there is a destruction in store for Arabia beciuse of the turmoil which is near at hand as the barrier of Gog and Magog has been opened like it, and he (in order to explain it) made a ring with the help o his thumb and forefinger. I said: Allah's Messenger, would we be destroyed despite the fact that there would be pious people amongst us? He said: Yes, when the evil would predominate.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6884"> Book 041, Number 6884: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated oil the authority of Zuhri with a different chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6885"> Book 041, Number 6885: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Today the wall (barrier) of Gog and Magog has been opened so much, and WUhaib (in order to explain it) made the figure of ninety with the help of his hand.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: THE SINKING OF AN ARMY IN THE EARTH WHICH WOULD ATTACK THE HOUSE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6886"> Book 041, Number 6886: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Harith b Abi Rabi'a and 'Abdullah b. Safwan both went to Umm Salama, the Mother of the Faithful, and they asked her about the army which would be sunk in the earth, and this relates to the time when Ibn Zubair (was the governor of Mecca). She reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had said that a seeker of refuge would seek refuge in the Sacred House and an army would be sent to him (in order to kill him) and when it would enter a plain ground, it would be made to sink. I said: Allah's Messenger, what about him who would be made to accompany this army willy nilly? Thereupon he said: He would be made to sink along with them buf he would be raised on the Day of Resurrection on the basis of his intention. Abu Ja'far said. ' This plain, ground means the plain ground of Medina.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6887"> Book 041, Number 6887: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Rufai, with the same chain of transmitters (but with the addition of these words):" When I met Abu Ja'far I told him that she (simply) meant the plain ground. Thereupon Abu Ja'far said: No, by God, she meant the plain ground of Medina.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6888"> Book 041, Number 6888: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Safwan reported that Hafsa told him that she had heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: An army would attack this House in order to fight against the inhabitants of this House and when it would be at the plain ground the ranks in the centre of the army would be sunk and the vanguard would call the rear flanks of the army and they would also be sunk and no flank would be left except some people who would go to inform them (their kith and kin). A person (who had been listening to this badith from Abdullah b. Safwan) said: I bear testimony in regard to you that you are not imputing a lie to Hafsa. And I bear testimony to the fact that Hafsa is not telling a lie about Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6889"> Book 041, Number 6889: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Safwan reported the Mother of the Faithful as saying that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: They would soon seek protection in this House, viz. Ka'ba (the defenceless), people who would have nothing to protect themselves in the shape of weapons or the strength of the people. An army would be sent to fight (and kill) them and when they would enter a plain ground the army would be sunk in it. Yiisuf (one of the narrators) said: It was a people of Syria (hordes of Hajjaj) who had been on that day comin. towards Mecca for an attack (on 'Abdulllah b. Zubair) and Abdullah b. Safwan said: By God, it does not imply this army.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6890"> Book 041, Number 6890: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was startled in the state of sleep. We said: Allah's Messenger, you have done something in the state of your sleep which you never did before, Thereupon he said: Strange it is that some, people of my Ummah would attack the House (Ka'ba) (for killing) a person who would belong to the tribe of the Quraish and he would try to seek protection in the House. And when they would reach the plain ground they would be sunk. We said: Allah's Messenger, all sorts of people throng the path. Thereupon he said: Yes, there would be amongst them people who would come with definite designs and those who would come under duress and there would be travellers also, but they would all be destroyed through one (stroke) of destruction. though they would be raised in different states (on the Day of Resurrection). Allah would, however, raise them according to their intention.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: THE TURMOIL WOULD COME LIKE RAINFALL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6891"> Book 041, Number 6891: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Usama reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) climbed up a battlement amongst the battlements of Medina and then said: You do not see what I am seeing and I am seeing the places of turmoil between your houses as tile places of rainfall.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6892"> Book 041, Number 6892: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6893"> Book 041, Number 6893: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There will be soon a period of turmoil in which the one who sits will be better than one who stands and the one who stands will be better than one who walks and the one who walks will be better than one who runs. He who would watch them will be drawn by them. So he who finds a refuge or shelter against it should make it as his resort.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6894"> Book 041, Number 6894: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Abu Huraira but with this variation of wording that in the hadith transmitted on the authority of Abu Bakr, there is an addition of these words:" There is a prayer among prayers ('Asr) and one who misses it is as if his family and property have been ruined."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6895"> Book 041, Number 6895: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would be turmoil and the one who would sleep would be better than who would be awake and the one who would be awake would be better than one who would stand and one who would stand would be better than one who would run. So he who finds refuge or shelter should take that refuge or shelter.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6896"> Book 041, Number 6896: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Bakra reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would soon be turmoil. Behold! there would be turmoil in which the one who would be seated would be better than one who would stand and the one who would stand would be better than one who would run. Behold! when the turmoil comes or it appears, the one who has camel should stick to his camel and he who has sheep or goat should stick to his sheep and goat and he who has land should stick to the land. A person said: 'Allah's Messenger, what is your opinion about one who has neither camel nor sheep nor land? Thereupon, he said: He should take hold of his sword and beat its edge with the help of stone and then try to find a way of escape. O Allah, I have conveyed (Thy Message) ; O Allah, I have conveyed (Thy Message) ; O Allah, I have conveyed (Thy Message). A person said: Allah's Messenger, what is your opinion it I am drawn to a rank in spite of myself, or in one of the groups and made to march and a man strikes with his sword or there comes an arrow and kills me? Thereupon he said: He will bear the punishment of his sin and that of yours and he would be one amongst the denizens of Hell.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6897"> Book 041, Number 6897: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Waki' with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: WHEN TWO MUSLIMS CONFRONT EACH OTHER WITH SWORDS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6898"> Book 041, Number 6898: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ahnaf b. Qais reported: I set out with the intention of helping this person (Hadrat 'Ali) that Abu Bakra met me. He said: Ahnaf, where do you intend to go? I said: I intend to help the cousin of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), viz. 'Ali. Thereupon he said to me: Ahnaf, go back, for I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When two Muslims confront one another with swords (in hands) both the slayer and the slain would be in Fire. He (Ahnaf) said: I said, or it was said: Allah's Messenger, it may be the case of one who kills. but what about the slain (why he would be put in Hell-Fire)? Thereupon he said: He also intended to kill his companion.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6899"> Book 041, Number 6899: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ahnaf b. Qais reported on the authority of Abu Bakra that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When two Muslims confront each other with their swords, both the slayer and the slain are doomed to Hell-Fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6900"> Book 041, Number 6900: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hammad through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6901"> Book 041, Number 6901: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Bakra reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When two Muslims (confront each other) and the one amongst them attacks his brother with a weapon, both of them are at the brink of Hell-Fire. And when one of them kills his companion, both of them get into Hell-Fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6902"> Book 041, Number 6902: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) many ahadith and one of them was this: The last Hour will not come until the two parties (of Muslims) confront each other and there is a large-scale massacre amongst them and the claim of both of them is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6903"> Book 041, Number 6903: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The last Hour will not come unless there is much bloodshed. They said: What is harj? Thereupon he said: Bloodshed. bloodshed.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: THIS UMMAH WOULD BE DESTROYED BY KILLING ONE ANOTHER </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6904"> Book 041, Number 6904: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Thauban reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah drew the ends of the world near one another for my sake. And I have seen its eastern and western ends. And the dominion of my Unimah would reach those ends which have been drawn near me and I have been granted the red and the white trea- sure and I begged my Lord for my Ummah that it should not be destroyed because of famine, nor be dominated by an enemy who is not amongst them to take their lives and destroy them root and branch, and my Lord said: Muhammad, whenever I make a decision, there is none to change it. Well, I grant you for your Ummah that it would not be destroyed by famine and it would not be dominated by an enemy who would not be amongst it and would take their lives and destroy them root and branch even if all the people from the different parts of the world join hands together (for this purpose), but it would be from amongst them, viz. your Ummah, that some people would kill the others or imprison the others.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6905"> Book 041, Number 6905: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Thauban reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said. Verily, Allah drew the ends of the world near me until I saw its cast and west an He bestowed upon me two treasures, the red and the white. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6906"> Book 041, Number 6906: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Amir b. Sa'd reported on the authority of his father that one day Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came from a high, land. He passed by the mosque of Banu Mu'awiya, went in and observed two rak'ahs there and we also observed prayer along with him and he made a long supplication to his Lord. He then came to us and said: I asked my Lord three things and He has granted me two but has withheld one. I begged my Lord that my Ummah should not be destroyed because of famine and He granted me this. And I begged my Lord that my Ummah should not be destroyed by drowning (by deluge) and He granted me this. And I begged my Lord that there should be no bloodshed among the people of my Ummah. but He did not grant it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6907"> Book 041, Number 6907: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Amir b. Sa'd reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came with a group of his Companions and he passed by the mosque of Banu Mu'awiya. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: THE EVENTS FORETOLD BY THE HOLY PROPHET (MAY PEACE BE UPON HIM) ABOUT THE LAST HOUR </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6908"> Book 041, Number 6908: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa b. al-Yaman reported: By Allah, I have the best knowledge amongst people about every turmoil which is going to appear in the period intervening me and the Last Hour; and it is not for the fact that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) told me something confidentially pertaining to it and he did not tell anybody else about it, but it is because of the fact that I was present in the assembly in which he had been describing the turmoil. and he especially made a mention of three turmoils which would not spare anything and amongst these there would be turmoils like storms in the hot season. Some of them would be violent and some of them would be comparatively mild. Hudhaifa said: All (who were present) except I have gone (to the next world).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6909"> Book 041, Number 6909: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood before us one day and he did not leave anything unsaid (that he had to say) at that very spot which would happen (in the shape of turmoil) up to the Last Hour. Those who had to remember them preserved them in their minds and those who could not remember them forgot them. My friends knew them and there are certain things which slip out of my mind, but I recapitulate them when anyone makes a mention of them just as a person is lost from one's mind but is recalled to him on seeing his face.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6910"> Book 041, Number 6910: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters up to the words: And he forgot who had to forget that and. he did not make a mention of what follows after this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6911"> Book 041, Number 6911: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) informed me of what is going to happen before the approach of the Last Hour. And there is nothing that I did not ask him in this connection except this that I did not ask him as to what would turn the people of Medina out from Medina.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6912"> Book 041, Number 6912: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6913"> Book 041, Number 6913: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Zaid (viz. Amr b. Akhtab) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) led us in the dawn prayer and then mounted the pulpit and addressed us until it was (time for the) noon prayer. He then came down the pulpit and observed prayer and then again mounted the pulpit and again addressed us until it was time for the 'Asr prayer. He then again came down and observed the prayer and again mointed the pulpit and addressed us until the sun was set and he informed (about) everything (pertaining to turmoil) that lay hidden in the past and what lies in (the womb) of) the future and the most learned amongst us is one who remembers them well</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: THE TURMOIL WOULD GO LIKE THE MOUNTING WAVES OF THE OCEAN </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6914"> Book 041, Number 6914: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa repotted: We were one day in the company of 'Umar that he said: Who amongst you has preserved in his mind most perfectly the hadith of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in regard to the turmoil as he told about it? I said: It is I. Thereupon he said: You are bold (enough to make this claim). And he further said: How? I said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would (first) be turmoil for a person in regard to his family, his property, his own self, his children, his neighbours (and the sins comnaitted in their connection) would be expiated by fasting, prayer, charity, enjoining good and prohibiting evil. Thereupon 'Umar said: I do not mean (that turmoil on a small scale) but that one which would eme-ge like the mounting waves of the ocean. I said: Commander of the Faithful, you have nothing to do with it, for the door is closed between you and that. He said: Would that door be broken or opened? I said: No, it would be broken. Thereupon he said: Then it would not be closed despite best efforts. We said to Hudhaifa: Did Umar know the door? Thereupon he said: Yes, he knew it (for certain) just as one knows that night precede the next day. And I narrated to him something in which there was nothing fabricated. Shaqiq (one of the narrators) said: We dared not ask Hudhaifa about that door. So we requested Masrdq to ask him. So he asked him and he said: (By that door, he meant) 'Umar.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6915"> Book 041, Number 6915: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hudhaifa through other chains of transmitters also.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6916"> Book 041, Number 6916: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa reported that Umar said: Who would narrate to us (the ahadith pertaining to turmoil) and he reported a badith similar to these ahadith.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6917"> Book 041, Number 6917: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jundub reported: I came on the day of Jara'a that a person was (found) sitting. I said: They would shed their blood today. That person said: By Allah. not at all. I said: By Allah, of course, they would do it. He said: By Allah, they would not do it. I said: By Allah, of course, they would do it. He said: By Allah, they would not do it, and I have heard a hadith of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) which I am narrating to you in this connection. I said: You are a bad seat fellow. I have been opposing you since morning and you are listening to me in spite of the fact that you have heard a hadith from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) (contrary to ray statement). I myself felt that there was no use of this annoyance. (He could tell me earlier that it was a hadith of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him], and I would not have opposed him at all.) I turned my face toward him and asked him and he was Hadrat Hudhaifa.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: THE LAST HOUR WOULD NOT COME UNTIL THE EUPIIRATES UNCOVERS A TREASURE OF GOLD </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6918"> Book 041, Number 6918: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come before the Euphrates uncovers a mountain of gold, for which people would fight. Ninety-nine out of each one hundred would die but every man amongst them would say that perhaps he would be the one who would be saved (and thus possess this gold).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6919"> Book 041, Number 6919: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Suhail with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition:" My father said: If you see that, do not even go near it."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6920"> Book 041, Number 6920: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come unless the Euphrates would uncover a treasure of gold, so he who finds it should not take anything out of that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6921"> Book 041, Number 6921: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Euphrates would soon uncover a mountain of gold but he who is present there should not take anything from that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6922"> Book 041, Number 6922: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Harith b. Naufal reported: I was standing along with Ubayy b. Ka, b and he said: The opinions of the people differ in regard to the achievement of worldly ends. I said: Yes, of course. Thereupon he said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Euphrates would soon uncover a mountain of gold and when the people would bear of it they would flock towards it but the people who would possess that (treasure) (would say): If we allow these persons to take out of it they would take away the whole of it. So they would fight and ninety-nine out of one hundred would be killed. Abu Kamil in his narration said: I and Abu Ka'b stood under the shade of the battlement of Hassan.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6923"> Book 041, Number 6923: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Iraq would withhold its dirhams and qafiz; Syria would withhold its mudd and dinar and Egypt would withhold its irdab and dinar and you would recoil to that position from where you started and you would recoil to that position from where you started and you would recoil to that position from where you started, the bones and the flesh of Abu Huraira would bear testimony to it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 9: PERTAINING TO THE CONQUEST OF CONSTANTINOPLE AND THE APPEARANCE OF THE DAJJAL AND DESCENT OF JESUS SON OF MARY (JESUS CHRIST) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6924"> Book 041, Number 6924: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until the Romans would land at al-A'maq or in Dabiq. An army consisting of the best (soldiers) of the people of the earth at that time will come from Medina (to counteract them). When they will arrange themselves in ranks, the Romans would say: Do not stand between us and those (Muslims) who took prisoners from amongst us. Let us fight with them; and the Muslims would say: Nay, by Allah, we would never get aside from you and from our brethren that you may fight them. They will then fight and a third (part) of the army would run away, whom Allah will never forgive. A third (part of the army). which would be constituted of excellent martyrs in Allah's eye, would be killed ani the third who would never be put to trial would win and they would be conquerors of Constantinople. And as they would be busy in distributing the spoils of war (amongst themselves) after hanging their swords by the olive trees, the Satan would cry: The Dajjal has taken your place among your family. They would then come out, but it would be of no avail. And when they would come to Syria, he would come out while they would be still preparing themselves for battle drawing up the ranks. Certainly, the time of prayer shall come and then Jesus (peace be upon him) son of Mary would descend and would lead them in prayer. When the enemy of Allah would see him, it would (disappear) just as the salt dissolves itself in water and if he (Jesus) were not to confront them at all, even then it would dissolve completely, but Allah would kill them by his hand and he would show them their blood on his lance (the lance of Jesus Christ).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 10: THE LAST HOUR WOULD COME WHEN THE ROMANS WOULD HAVE THE MAXIMUM POPULATION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6925"> Book 041, Number 6925: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mustaurid al-Qurashi reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would come (when) the Romans would form a majority amongst people. 'Amr said to him (Mustaurid Qurashi): See what you are saying? He said: I say what I heard from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Thereupon he said: If you say that, it is a fact for they have four qualities. They have the patience to undergo a trial and immediately restore themselves to sanity after trouble and attack again after flight. They (have the quality) of being good to the destitute and the orphans, to the weak and, fifthly, the good quality in them is that they put resistance against the oppression of kings.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6926"> Book 041, Number 6926: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mustaurid Qurashi reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would come when the Romans would form a majority amongst people. This reached 'Amr b. al-'As and he said: What are these ahadith which are being transmitted from you and which you claim to have heard from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Mustaurid said to him: I stated only that which I heard from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Thereupon 'Amr said: If you state this (it is true), for they have the power of tolerance amongst people at the time of turmoil and restore themselves to sanity after trouble, and are good amongst people so far as the destitute and the weak are concerned.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 11: THERE WOULD BE MUCH BLOODSHED AMONG ROMANS AT THE TIME OF THE APPEARANCE OF THE DAJJAL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6927"> Book 041, Number 6927: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Yusair b. Jabir reported: Once there blew a red storm in Kufah that there came a person who had nothing to say but (these words): Abdullah b. Mas'ud, the Last Hour has come. He ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) was sitting reclining against something, and he said: The Last Hour would not come until the people divide in- heritance and rejoice over booty, and then said pointing towards Syria, with the gesture of his hand like this: The enemy shall muster strength against Muslims and the Muslims will muster strength against them (Syrians). I said: You mean Rome? And he said: Yes, and there would be a terrible fight and the Muslims would prepare a detachment (for fighting unto death) which would not return but victorious. They will fight until night will intervene them; both the sides will return without being victorious and both will be wiped out. The Muslims will again prepare a detachment for fighting unto death so that they may not return but victorious. When it would be the fourth day, a new detachment out of the remnant of the Muslims would be prepared and Allah will decree that the enemy should be routed. And they would fight such a fight the like of which would not be seen, so much so that even if a bird were to pass their flanks, it would fall down dead before reaching the end of them. (There would be such a largescale massacre) that when counting would be done, (only) one out of a hundred men related to one another would be found alive. So what can be the joy at the spoils of such war and what inheritance would be divided! They would be in this very state that they would hear of a calamity more horrible than this. And a cry would reach them: The Dajjil has taken your place among your off- spring. They will, therefore, throw away what would be in their hands and go forward sending ten horsemen, as a scouting party. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I know their names and the names of their forefathers and the colour of their horses. They will be best horsemen on the surface of the earth on that day or amongst the best horsemen on the surface of the earth on that day.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6928"> Book 041, Number 6928: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I was in the company of Ibn Mas'ud that there blew a red storm. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6929"> Book 041, Number 6929: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I was in the house of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud and the house was fully packed that a red storm blew in Kufah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 12: THE CONQUESTS OF THE MUSLIMS BEFORE THE APPEARANCE OF THE DAJJAL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6930"> Book 041, Number 6930: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Nafi' b. Utba reported: We were with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in an expedition that there came a people to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) from the direction of the west. They were dressed in woollen clothes and they stood near a hillock and they met him as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was sitting. I said to myself: Better go to them and stand between him and them that they may not attack him. Then I thought that perhaps there had been going on secret negotiation amongst them. I however, went to them and btood between them and him and I remember four of the words (on that occasion) which I repeat (on the fingers of my hand) that he (Allah's Messenger) said: You will attack Arabia and Allah will enable you to conquer it, then you would attack Persia and He would make you to Conquer it. Then you would attack Rome and AllgLh will enable you to conquer it, then you would attack the Dajjal and Allah will enable you to conquer him. Nafi' said: Jabir, we thought that the Dajjal would appear after Rome (Syrian territory) would be conquered.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 13: THE SIGNS BEFORE THE APPROACH OF THE LAST HOUR </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6931"> Book 041, Number 6931: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa b. Usaid Ghifari reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to us all of a sudden as we were (busy in a discussion). He said: What do you discuss about? They (the Companions) said. We are discussing about the Last Hour. Thereupon he said: It will not cone until you see ten signs before and (in this connection) he made a mention of the smoke, Dajjal, the beast, the rising of the sun from the west, the descent of Jesus son of Mary (Allah be pleased with him), the Gog and Magog, and land-slidings in three places, one in the east, one in the west and one in Arabia at the end of which fire would burn forth from the Yemen, and would drive people to the place of their assembly.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6932"> Book 041, Number 6932: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa b. Usaid reported: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) was in an apartment and we were beneath that that he peeped in and said to us: What are you discussing about? We said: (We are discussing about the Last) Hour. Thereupon he said: The Last Hour would not come until the ten signs dppear: land-sliding in the east, and land-sliding in the west, and land-sliding in the peninsula of Arabia, the smoke, the Dajjal, the beast of the earth, Gog and Magog, the rising of the sun from the west and the fire which would emit from the lower part of 'Adan. Shu'ba said that 'Abd al-'Aziz b. Rufai' reported on the authority of Abu Tufail who reported on the authority of Abu Sariha a hadith like this that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did not make a mention of (the tenth sign) but he said that out of the ten one was the descent of Jesus Christ, son of Mary (peace be upon him), and in another version it is theb lowing of the violent gale which would drive the people to the ocean.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6933"> Book 041, Number 6933: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sariha reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was in an (upper) apartment and we were standing lower to him and discussing (about the Last Hour). The rest of the hadith is the same, and Shu'ba said: I think he also said these words: The fire would descend along with them where they would land and where they would take rest (during midday (it would also cool down for a while). Shu'ba said: This hadith has been transmitted to me through Abu Tufail and Abu Sariha and none could trace it back directly to Allah's Apostle (may peace b.. upon him). However, there is a mention of the descent of Jesus Christ son of Mary in one version and in the other there is a mention of the blowing of a violent would drive them to the ocean.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6934"> Book 041, Number 6934: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sariha reported: We were discussing the Last Hour) that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) looked towards us. The rest of the hadith is the same and the tenth (sign) was the descent of Jesus Christ son of Mary, and Shu'ba said: 'Abd al-'Aziz did not trace it directly to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 14: THE LAST HOUR WOULD NOT COME UNTIL THE FIRE EMITS FROM THE EARTH OF HIJAZ </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6935"> Book 041, Number 6935: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger may peace be upon him) said: The Last Hour would not come until fire emits from the earth of Hijaz which would illuminate the necks of the camels of the Busra.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6936"> Book 041, Number 6936: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: (The Last Hour would not come) until the habitations of Medina would extend to Ihab or Yahab. Zubair said: I said to Suhail how far these were from Medina. He said: So and so miles.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6937"> Book 041, Number 6937: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The famine would not break otit because of drought, but there would be famine despite heavy rainfall as nothing would grow from the earth.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6938"> Book 041, Number 6938: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying (in a state) that he had turned his face towards the east: Behold, turmoil would appear from this side, from where the horns of Satan would appear.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6939"> Book 041, Number 6939: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood by the door (of the apartment of) gafsa and, pointing towards the east, he said: The turmoil would appear from this side, viz. where the horns of Satan would appear, and he uttered these words twice or thrice and Ubaidullah b. Sa'ld in his narration said. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had been standing by the door of 'A'isha.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6940"> Book 041, Number 6940: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Salim b. Abdullah reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), while turning his face towards the east, said: The turmoil would appear from this side; verily, the turmoil would appear from this side; verily, the turmoil. would appear from this side-the side where appear the horns of Satan.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6941"> Book 041, Number 6941: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came out from the house of 'A'isha and said: It would be from this side that there would appear the height of unbelief, viz. where appear the horns of Satan. i. e. cast.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6942"> Book 041, Number 6942: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying while pointing his hands towards the east: The turmoil would appear from this side; verily, the turmoil would appear from this side (he repeated it thrice) where appear the horns of Satan.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6943"> Book 041, Number 6943: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Fudail reported on the authority of his father that he heard Salim b. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar as saying: O people of Iraq, how strange it is that you ask about the minor sins but commit major sins? I heard from my father 'Abdullah b. 'Umar, narrating that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying while pointing his hand towards the east: Verily. the turmoil would come from this side, from where appear the horns of Satan and you would strike the necks of one another; and Moses killed a person from among the people of Pharaoh unintentionally and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said:" You killed a person but We relieved you from the grief and tried you with (many a) trial" (xx. 40). Ahmad b. Umar reported this hadith from Salim, but he did not make a mention of the words:" I heard".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 15: THE LAST HOUR WOULD NOT COME UNTIL THE WOMEN OF THE TRIBE OF DAUS WOULD GO ROUND DHI AL-KHALASA </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6944"> Book 041, Number 6944: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until the women of the tribe of Daus would be seen going round Dhi al-Khalasa (for worship) and Dhi al-Khalasa is a place in Tabala, where there was a temple in which the people of the tribe of Daus used to worship the idol.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6945"> Book 041, Number 6945: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The (system) of night and day would not end until the people have taken to the worship of Lat and 'Uzza. I said: Allah's Messenger, I think when Allah has revealed this verse:" He it is Who has sent His Messenger with right guidance, and true religion, so that He may cause it to prevail upon all religions, though the polytheists are averse (to it)" (ix. 33), it implies that (this promise) is going to be fulfilled. Thereupon he (Allah's Apostle) said: It would happen as Allah would like. Then Allah would send the sweet fragrant air by which everyone who has even a mustard grain of faith in Him would die and those only would survive who would have no goodness in them. And they would revert to the religion of their forefathers.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6946"> Book 041, Number 6946: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Ja'far with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 16: THE LAST HOUR WOULD NOT COME UNTIL A PERSON WOULD PASS BY A GRAVE AND WISH THAT HE SHOULD HAVE BEEN THE OCCUPANT OF THAT GRAVE BECAUSE OF THIS CALAMITY </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6947"> Book 041, Number 6947: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until a person would pass by a grave of another person and he would say: I wish it had been my abode.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6948"> Book 041, Number 6948: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: By Him, in Whose hand is my life, the world would not come to an end until a person would pass by a grave, would roll over it and express the desire that he should be in the place of the occupant of that grave not because of religious reasons but because of this calamity.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6949"> Book 041, Number 6949: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, a time would come when the murderer would not know why he has committed the murder, and the victim would not know why he has been killed.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6950"> Book 041, Number 6950: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The world would not come to an end until a day would come to the people on which the murderer would not know as to why he has killed and the slain would not know as to why he has been murdered. It would be said: Why would It happen? To which he replied: It would be because of general massacre and bloodshed. And the slaughterers and the slain would be in Fire, and in the narration of Ibn Aban, the name of Abu Isma'il has been mentioned.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6951"> Book 041, Number 6951: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Ka'ba would be destroyed by an Abyssinian having two small shanks.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6952"> Book 041, Number 6952: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> (The above mentioned) hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6953"> Book 041, Number 6953: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It would be an Abyssinian having two small shanks who would destroy the House ol Allah, the Exalted and Glorious.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6954"> Book 041, Number 6954: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messengar (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come before a person of Qahtan comes forth driving people with his stick.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6955"> Book 041, Number 6955: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The day and the night would not come to an end before a man called al-Jahjah would occupy the throne.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6956"> Book 041, Number 6956: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come unless you fight with people whose faces are like hammered shields and the Last Hour would not come until you would fight against those wearing the shoes of hair.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6957"> Book 041, Number 6957: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until a people wearing shoes of hair fight against you having their faces like hammered shields.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6958"> Book 041, Number 6958: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until you fight with a people wearing shoes of hair and the Last Hour would not come until you fight with a people having small eyes and broad snub noses.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6959"> Book 041, Number 6959: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until the Muslims fight with the Turks-a people whose faces would be like hammered shields wearing clothes of hair and walking (with shoes) of hair.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6960"> Book 041, Number 6960: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: You shall fight in the hours to come against a nation wearing shoes made of hair and faces like hammered shields, with red complexion and small eyes.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6961"> Book 041, Number 6961: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Nadra reported:" We were in the company of Jabir b. 'Abdulldh that he said it may happen that the people of Iraq may not send their qafiz and dirhams (their measures of food stuff and their money). We said: Who would be respolisible for it? He said: The non_Arabs would prevt them. He again said: There is the possibility that the people of Syria may not send their dinar and mudd. We said: Who would be responsible for it? He said This prevention would be made by the Romans. He (Jabir b. Abdullab) kept quiet for a while and then reported Allah', s Messengdt (may peas be upon him) having said There would be a caliph in the last (period) of my Ummah who would freely give handfuls of wealth to thd people wiothout counting it. I said to Abu Nadra and Abu al-'Ala: DO you mean 'Umarb. 'Abd al-Aziz? They said: No (he would be Imam Mahdi.).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6962"> Book 041, Number 6962: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith hab been narrated by Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6963"> Book 041, Number 6963: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) I said: There would be amongest your caliphs a caliph who would give handfuls of wealth to the, but wbuld not count it. In. the narration transmitted on the authority of Ibn Hujr, there is a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6964"> Book 041, Number 6964: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id and Jabir b. Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There would be in the last phase of the time a caliph who would distribute wealth but would not count.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6965"> Book 041, Number 6965: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Sa'id through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6966"> Book 041, Number 6966: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported: One who Is better than I informed me, that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to 'Ammar as he was digging the ditch (on the ocasion of the Battle of the Ditch) wiping over his head: O son of Summayya you will be involved in trouble and a group of the rebels would kill you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6967"> Book 041, Number 6967: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the same authority but with this variation that the hadith trarismitted on the authority of Nabra (the words are): One Who is better than I informed me, and he was Abu Qatatda, and in the hadith transmitted on the authority of Khalid instead of the word 'bu_us' there is 'dys' or 'yadis', i. e.:" how sad it is".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6968"> Book 041, Number 6968: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Umm Salama that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to 'Ammar: A group of rebels would kill you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6969"> Book 041, Number 6969: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Umm Salam through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6970"> Book 041, Number 6970: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Unmm Salama reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: A band of rebels would kill 'Ammar.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6971"> Book 041, Number 6971: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: This tribe of the Quraish would kill (people) of wy Ummah. They (the Companions) said: What us to do (in such a situations)? Thereupon he said: Would that the people remain aside from them (and not besmear their hand with the blood of the Muslim).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6972"> Book 041, Number 6972: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6973"> Book 041, Number 6973: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allh's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: (Khusrau king of Persia) would die and Qaisar (Ceasar King of Rome) would die; there would be no Qaisar after him, but, by one in Whose Hand is my life, you would spend their treasures in the cause of Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6974"> Book 041, Number 6974: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Zuhri.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6975"> Book 041, Number 6975: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammam b. Munabbih reported: This is what Abu Huraira reported from Allah's messenger (may peace be upon him) and in this connection he reported so many hadith (and one of them was this): Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Kisra would die and then there would be no Kisra after him. Qaisar would die and there would be no Qaisar after him, but you will distribute their threasuers in thecause of Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6976"> Book 041, Number 6976: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Samura reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When Kisra would die there would be no Kisra after him; the rest of the hadith is the same as Abu Huraira reported.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6977"> Book 041, Number 6977: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Samura reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (as sayingt There would lie open for a group of Muslims, or for a group of believers, the treasures of the family of Kisra which would be in the whit (palace). In a version of Qutaiba there is definitely the word" Muslim".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6978"> Book 041, Number 6978: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Samura reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) a hadith like this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6979"> Book 041, Number 6979: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) saying: You have heard about a city the one side of which is in the land and the other is in the sea (Constantinople). They said: Allall's Messenger, yes. Thererupon he said: The Last Hour would not cmoe unlesss seventy thousand persons from Bani lsra'il would attack it. When they would land there, they will neither fight with weapons nor would shower arrows but would only say:" There is no god but Allah and Allah is the Greatest," that one side of it would fall. Thaur (one of the narrators) said: I think that he said: The part by the side of the ocean. Then they would say for the second time:" There is no god but Allah and Allah is the Greatest" that the second side would also fall, and they would say:" There is no god but Allah and Allah is the Greatest," that the gates would be opened for them and they would enter therein and, they would be collecting spoils of war and distributing them amongst themselves that a noise would be heard and It would be said: Verily, Dajjal has come. And thus they would leave everything there and would turn to him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6980"> Book 041, Number 6980: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Thaur b. Zaid has narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6981"> Book 041, Number 6981: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: You will fight against the Jews and you will kill them until even a stone would say: Come here, Muslim, there is a Jew (hiding himself behind me) ; kill him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6982"> Book 041, Number 6982: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ubaidullah has reported this hadith with this chain of transmitters (and the Words are):" There is a Jew behind me."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6983"> Book 041, Number 6983: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: You and the Jews would fight against one another until a stone would say: Muslim, here is a Jew behind me; come and kill him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6984"> Book 041, Number 6984: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The Jews will fight against you and you will gain victory over them until the stone would say: Muslim, here is a Jew behind me; kill him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6985"> Book 041, Number 6985: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The last hour would not come unless the Muslims will fight against the Jews and the Muslims would kill them until the Jews would hide themselves behind a stone or a tree and a stone or a tree would say: Muslim, or the servant of Allah, there is a Jew behind me; come and kill him; but the tree Gharqad would not say, for it is the tree of the Jews.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6986"> Book 041, Number 6986: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Samura reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Before the Last Hour there would be many liars, and there is an addition in the badith transmitted on the authority of Abu Ahwas of these words:" I said to him: Did you hear it from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? He said: Yes."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6987"> Book 041, Number 6987: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Simak with the same chain of transmitters. and Simak said: I heard my brother say that jabir had stated: Be on your guard against them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6988"> Book 041, Number 6988: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would not come until there would arise about thirty impostors, liars, and each one of them would claim that he is a messenger of Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6989"> Book 041, Number 6989: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Abu Huraira with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 17: STORY OF IBN SAYYAD </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6990"> Book 041, Number 6990: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah reported: We were along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that we happened to pass by children amongst whom there was Ibn Sayyad. The children made their way but Ibn Sayyad kept sitting there (and it seemed) as if Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did not like it (his sitting with the children) and said to him: May your nose he besmeared with dust, don't you bear testimony to the fact that I am the Messenger of Allah? Thereupon he said: No, but you should bear testimony that I am the messenger of Allah. Thereupon 'Umar b. Khattab said: Allah's Messenger, permit me that I should kill him. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If he is that person who is in your mind (Dajjal ), you will not be able to kill him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6991"> Book 041, Number 6991: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah reported: We were walking with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that Ibn Sayyad happened to pass by him. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: I have concealed for you (something to test you, so tell me that). He said: It is Dukh. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: Be off. You cannot get farther than your rank, whereupon 'Umar said: Allah's Messenger, permit me to strike his neck. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Leave him; if he is that one (Dajjal) whom you apprehend, you will not be able to kill him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6992"> Book 041, Number 6992: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) met him (Ibn Sayyad) and so did Abu Bakr and 'Umar on some of the roads of Medina. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Do you bear testimony to the fact that I am the Messenger of Allah? Thereupon he said: Do you bear testimony to the fact that I am the messenger of Allah? Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I affirm my faith in Allah and in His Angels and in His Books, and what do you see? He said: I see the throne over water. Whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: You see the throne of Iblis upon the water, and what else do you see? He said: I see two truthfuls and a liar or two liars and one truthful. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Leave him He has been confounded.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6993"> Book 041, Number 6993: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b 'Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) met Ibn Sa'id (Sayyad) and there were with him Abu Bakr and 'Umar and Ibn Sayyad was in the company of children. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6994"> Book 041, Number 6994: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id reported: I accompanied Ibn Sayyad to Mecca and he said to me: What I have gathered from people is that theu think that I am Dajjal. Have you not hearde Allah's Messenger (may peace upon him) as saying: He will have no no children, I said: Yes, of course. Thereupon he said: But I have children. Have you not heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He would not enter Mecca and Medina? I said: Yes, of course. Thereupon he said I have been once in Medina and now I intend to go to Mecca. And he said to me at the end of his talk: By Allah: I know his place of birth his abode where he is just now. He (Abu Sa'id) said: This caused confusion in my mind (in regard to his identity).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6995"> Book 041, Number 6995: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported: Ibn Sa'id said to me somethhing for which I felt ashamed. He said: I can excuse others; but what has gone wrong with you, O Companions of Muhammad, that you take me as Dajjal? Has Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) not said that he would be a Jew whereas I am a Muslim and he also said that he would not have children, whereas I have children, and he also said: veryly, Allah has prohibited him to enter Mecca whereas I have performed Pilgrimage, atid. he went on saying this that I was about to be impressed by his tallk. He (however) said this also: I know where he (Dajjal) is and I know his father abd I mother, and it was said to him: Won't you feel pleased if you would be the same person? Thereupon he said: If this offer is made to me, I would noT resent that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6996"> Book 041, Number 6996: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported: We came back after having pewrformed Pilgrimage or 'Umra and lbn Sa'id was along with us. And w, e encamped at a place and the people dispersed and I and he were left behind. I felt terribly frightend from him as it was said about him that he was the Dajjal. He brought his goods and placed them by my luggage and I said: It is intense heat. Would you not place that under that tree? And he did that. Then ther appeared before us a flock of sheep. He went and brought a cup of milk and said: Abu Sa'id, drink that. I said it is intense heat and the milk is also hot (whereas the fact was) that I did not like to drink from his hands or to opr to take it from his hand and he said: Abu Sa'id, I think that I should take a rope and suspend it by the tree and then coimmit sucide because of the talks of the people, and he furtlier said. Abu Sa'id he who is ingnoran of the saying of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (he is to be pardoned), but O people of Ansar, is this hadith of Allah's Messengern (may peace be upon him) concealed from you whereas you have the best konowledge of t this hadith of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) amongst people? Did Allalt's Messenger (may peace be upon him) not say that he (Dajjal) would be a non believer whereas I am a believer? did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) not say he would be barren and no child would be born to hirn, whereas I have left my children in Medina? Did Allh's Messenger (may peace upon him) not say: He would not get into Medina and Mecca whereas I have been coming from Medina and now I intend to go to Mecca? Abu Sa'id said: I was about to accept the excuse put forward by him. that he said: I know the place where he would be born and where he is now. So I said to him: May your whole dayb be spent</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6997"> Book 041, Number 6997: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has transmitted on the authority of Abu Sa'id that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) asked Ibn Sa'id about the earth of Paradise. Thereupon he said: Abu'l-Qasim, It is like a fine white musk, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: 'You have told the the truth.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6998"> Book 041, Number 6998: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id reported that Ibn Sayyad asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about the earth of Paradise. Whereupon he said: It is like white shining pure musk.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.6999"> Book 041, Number 6999: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Muhammad b. Munkadir reported: As I saw Jabir b. 'Abdullah taking an oath in the name of Allah that it was Ibn Sa'id who was the Dajjal I said: Do you take an oath in the name of Allah? Thereupon he said: I heard 'Umar taking an oath in the presence of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) to this effect but Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did not disapprove of it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7000"> Book 041, Number 7000: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Umar reported: 'Umar b. Khattab went along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in the company of some persons toIbn Sayyad that he found him playing with children near the bettlement of Bani Maghala and Ibn Sayyad was at that time just at the threshold of adolescence and he did not perceive (the presence of Holy Prophet) until Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) struck his back with his hands. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Ibn Sayyad, don't you bear witness that I am the messenger of Allah? Ibn Sayyad looked toward him and he said: I bear witness to the fact that you the messenger of the unlettered. Ibn Sayyad said to the Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him): Do you bear witness to the fact that I am the messenger of Allah? Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) rejected this and said: I affirm my faith in Allah and in His messengers. Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: What do you see? Ibn Sayyad said: It us a Dukh. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: May you be disgraced and dishonoured, you would not not be able to go beyond your rank. 'Umar b. Khattab said: Allah's Messenger, permit me that I should strike his neck. Therupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If he is the same (Dajjal) who would appear near the Last Hour, you would not be able to overpower him, and he is not that ther is no good for you to kill him. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar further narrated that after some time Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and Ubayy b. Ka'b went towards the palm trees where Ibn Sayyad was. When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went near the tree he hid himself behind a tree with the intention of hearing something from Ibn sayyad before Ibn Sayyad could see him, but Allah's Messenger (may pcxce be upon him) saw him on a bed with a blanket around him from which a murmuring sound was being heard and Ibn Sayyad's mother saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) behind the trunk of the palm tree. She said to Ibn Sayyad: Saf (that being his name), here is Muhammad. Thereupon Ibn Sayyad jumped up murmuring and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If she had left him alone he would have made things clear. Abdullah b. Umar told that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood up amongst the people and lauded Allah as He deserved, then he made a mention of the Dajjal and said: I warn you of him and there is no Prophet who has not warned his people against the Dajjal. Even Noah warned (against him) but I am going to tell you a thing which no Prophet told his people. You must know that he (the Dajjal) is one-eyed and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, is not one-eyed. Ibn Shihab said: 'Umar b. Thabit al-Ansari informed me that some of the Companions of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) informed him that the day when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) warned people against the Dajjal, he also said: There would be written between his two eyes (the word) Kafir (infidel) and everyone who would resent his deeds would be able to read or every Muslim would be about to read, and he also said: Bear this thing in mind that none amongst you would be able to see Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, until he dies.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7001"> Book 041, Number 7001: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went along with him in the company of some persons and there was Umar b. Khattab also amongst them till they saw Ibn Sayyad as a young boy just on the threshold of adolescence playing with children near the battlement of Bani Mu'awiya; the rest of the hadith is the same but with these concluding words:" Had his mother left him (to murmur) his matter would have become clear."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7002"> Book 041, Number 7002: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by Ibn Sayyad along with his Companions including 'Umar b. Khattab as he was playing with children near the battlement of Bani Maghala and he was also a child by that time. The rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by Ibn Umar (in which there is a mention of) setting out of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) along with Ubayy b. Ka'b towards the date-palm trees.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7003"> Book 041, Number 7003: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Nafi' reported that Ibn 'Umar met Ibn Si'id on some of the paths of Medina and he said to him a word which enraged him and he was so much swollen with anger that the way was blocked. Ibn 'Umar went to Hafsa and informed her about this. Thereupon she said: May Allah have mercy upon you, why did you incite Ibn Sayyad in spite of the fact that you knew it would be the extreme anger which would make Dajjal appear in the world?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7004"> Book 041, Number 7004: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Nafi' reported that Ibn 'Umar said: I met lbn Sayyad twice and said to some of them (his friends): You state that it was he (the Dajjal). He said: By Allah, it is not so. I said: You have not told me the truth; by Allah some of you informed me that he would not die until he would have the largest number of offspring and huge wealth and it is he about whom it is thought so. Then Ibn Sayyad talked to us. I then departed and met him again for the second time and his eye had been swollen. I said: What has happened to your eye? He said: I do not know. I said: This is in your head and you do not know about it? He said: If Allah so wills He can create it (eye) in your staff. He then produced a sound like the braying of a donkey. Some of my companions thought that I had struck him with the staff as he was with me that the staff broke into pieces, but, by Allah, I was not conscious of it. He then came to the Mother of the Faithful (Hafsa) and narrated it to her and she said: What concern you have with him? Don't you know that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said that the first thing (by the incitement of which) he would come out before the public would be his anger?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 18: ACCOUNT OF THE DAJJAL AND HIS FEATURES AND WHAT WOULD BE ALONG WITH HIM </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7005"> Book 041, Number 7005: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). made a mention of Dajjil in the presence of the people and said: Allah is not one-eyed and behold that Dajjal is blind of the right eye and his eye would be like a floating grape.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7006"> Book 041, Number 7006: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Umar through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7007"> Book 041, Number 7007: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There is never a prophet who has not warned the Ummah of that one-eyed liar; behold he is one-eyed and your Lord is not one-eyed. On his forehead are the letters k f. r. (Kafir).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7008"> Book 041, Number 7008: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There would be written three letters k. f. r., i. e. Kafir, between the eyes of the Dajjal.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7009"> Book 041, Number 7009: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Dajjal is blind of one eye and there is written between his eyes the word" Kafir". He then spelled the word as k. f. r., which every Muslim would be able to read.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7010"> Book 041, Number 7010: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhalfa reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Dajjal is blind of left eye with thick hair and there would be a garden and fire with him and his fire would be a garden and his garden would be fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7011"> Book 041, Number 7011: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: the Dajjal would have with him water and fire and his fire would bays the effect of cold water and his water would have the effect of fire, so don't put yourself to ruin. Abu Mas'ud reported: I also heard it from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7012"> Book 041, Number 7012: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Uqba b. 'Amr Abu Mas'ud al-Ansari reported: I went to Hudhaifa b. Yaman and said to him: Narrate what you have heard from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) pertaining to the Dajjal. He said that the Dajjal would appear and there would be along with him water ant fire and what the people would see as water that would be fire and that would burn and what would appear as fire that would be water and any one of you who would see that should plunge in that which he sees as fire for it would be sweet, pure water, and 'Uqba said: I also heard it, testifying Hudhaifa.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7013"> Book 041, Number 7013: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hudhaifa and Ibn Mas'ud met together. Hudhaifa said: I know more than you as to what there would be along with the Dajjal. There would be along with him two canals (one flowing with water) and the other one (having) fire (within it), and what you would see as fire would be water and what you would see as water would be fire. So he who amongst you is able to see that and is desirous of water should drink out of that which he sees as fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7014"> Book 041, Number 7014: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: May I not inform you about the Dajjal what no Apostle of Allah narrated to his people? He would be blind and he would bring along with him an Image of Paradise and Hell-Fire and what he would call as Paradise that would be Hell-Fire and I warn you as Noah warned his people.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7015"> Book 041, Number 7015: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> An-Nawwas b. Sam'an reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) made a mention of the Dajjal one day in the morning. He sometimes described him to be insignificant and sometimes described (his turmoil) as very significant rand we felt) as if he were in the cluster of the date-palm trees. When we went to him (to the Holy Prophet) in the evening and he read (the signs of fear) in our faces, he said: What is the matter with you? We said: Allah's Messenger, you made a mention of the Dajjal in the morning (sometimes describing him) to be insignificant and sometimes very important, until we began to think as if he were present in some (near) part of the cluster of the datpalm trees. Thereupon he said: I harbour fear in regard to you in so many other things besides the Dajjal. If he comes forth while I am among on, I shall contend with him on your behalf, but if he comes forth while I am not amongst you, a man must contend on his own behalf and Allah would take care of every Muslim on my behalf (and safeguard him against his evil). He (Dajjal) would be a young man with twisted, contracted hair, and a blind eye. I compare him to 'Abd-ul-'Uzza b. Qatan. He who amongst you would survive to see him should recite over him the opening verses of Sura Kahf (xviii.). He would appear on the way between Syria and Iraq and would spread mischief right and left. O servant of Allah! adhere (to the path of Truth). We said: Allah's Messenger, how long would he stay on the earth? He said.. For forty days, one day like a year and one day like a month and one day like a week and the rest of the days would be like your days. We said: Allah's Messenger, would one day's prayer suffice for the prayers of day equal to one year? Thereupon he said: No, but you must make an estimate of time (and then observe prayer). We said: Allah's Messenger, how quickly would he walk upon the earth? Thereupon he said: Like cloud driven by the wind. He would come to the people and invite them (to a wrong religion) and they would affirm their faith in him and respond to him. He would then give command to the sky and there would be rainfall upon the earth and it would grow crops. Then in the evening, their posturing animals would come to them with their humps very high and their udders full of milk and their flanks stretched. He would then come to another people and invite them. But they would reject him and he would go away from them and there would be drought for them and nothing would be lef t with them in the form of wealth.</p> <p> He would then walk through the waste, land and say to it: Bring forth your treasures, and the treasures would come out and collect (themselves) before him like the swarm of bees. He would then call a person brimming with youth and strike him with the sword and cut him into two pieces and (make these pieces lie at a distance which is generally) between the archer and his target. He would then call (that young man) and he will come forward laughing with his face gleaming (with happiness) and it would at this very time that Allah would send Christ, son of Mary, and he will descend at the white minaret in the eastern side of Damscus wearing two garments lightly dyed with saffron and placing his hands on the wings of two Angels. When he would lower his head, there would fall beads of perspiration from his head, and when he would raise it up, beads like pearls would scatter from it. Every non-believer who would smell the odour of his self would die and his breath would reach as far as he would be able to see. He would then search for him (Dajjal) until he would catch hold of him at the gate of Ludd and would kill him. Then a people whom Allah had protected would come to Jesus, son of Mary, and he would wipe their faces and would inform them of their ranks in Paradise and it would be under such conditions that Allah would reveal to Jesus these words: I have brought forth from amongst My servants such people against whom none would be able to fight; you take these people safely to Tur, and then Allah would send Gog and Magog and they would swarm down from every slope. The first of them would pass the lake of Tibering and drink out of it. And when the last of them would pass, he would say: There was once water there. Jesus and his companions would then be besieged here (at Tur, and they would be so much hard pressed) that the head of the ox would be dearer to them than one hundred dinirs and Allah's Apostle, Jesus, and his companions would supplicate Allah, Who would send to them insects (which would attack their necks) and in the morning they would perish like one single person. Allah's Apostle, Jesus, and his companions would then come down to the earth and they would not find in the earth as much space as a single span which is not filled with their putrefaction and stench. Allah's Apostle, Jesus, and his companions would then again beseech Allah, Who would send birds whose necks would be like those of bactrin camels and they would carry them and throw them where God would will.</p> <p> Then Allah would send rain which no house of clay or (the tent of) camels' hairs would keep out and it would wash away the earth until it could appear to be a mirror. Then the earth would be told to bring forth its fruit and restore its blessing and, as a result thereof, there would grow (such a big) pomegranate that a group of persons would be able to eat that, and seek shelter under its skin and milch cow would give so much milk that a whole party would be able to drink it. And the milch camel would give such (a large quantity of) milk that the whole tribe would be able to drink out of that and the milch sheep would give so much milk that the whole family would be able to drink out of that and at that time Allah would send a pleasant wind which would soothe (people) even under their armpits, and would take the life of every Muslim and only the wicked would survive who would commit adultery like asses and the Last Hour would come to them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7016"> Book 041, Number 7016: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Jabir with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition that Gog and Magog would walk until they would reach the mountain of al-Khamar and it is a mountain of Bait-ul-Maqdis and they would say: We have killed those who are upon the earth. Let us now kill those who are In the sky and they would throw their arrows towards the sky and the arrows would return to them besmeared with blood. And in the narration of Ibn Hujr (the words are):" I have sent such persons (Gog and Magog) that none would dare fight against them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 19: THE CHARACTERISTIC OF THE DAJJAL AND A BAN ON HIS ENTRY TO MEDINA AND HIS KILLING OF A BELIEVER AND THEN RESTORING HIM TO LIFE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7017"> Book 041, Number 7017: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) one day gave a detailed account of the Dajjal and in that it was also included: He would come but would not be allowed to ether the mountain passes to Medina. So he will alight at some of the barren tracts near Medina, and a person who would be the best of men or one from amongst the best of men would say to him: I bear testimony to the fact that you are Dajjal about whom Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had informed us. The Dajjal would say: What is your opinion if I kill this (person), then I bring him back to life; even then will you harbour doubt in this matter? They would say: No. He would then kill (the man) and then bring him back to life. When he would bring tha@ person to life, he would say: By Allah, I had no better proof of the fact (that you are a Dajjal) than at the present time (that you are actually so). The Dajjal would then make an attempt to kill him (again) but he would not be able to do that. Abu Ishaq reported that it was said: That person would be Khadir (Allah be pleased with him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7018"> Book 041, Number 7018: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7019"> Book 041, Number 7019: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Dajjal would come forth and a person from amongst the believers would go towards him and the armed men of the Dajjal would meet him and they would say to him: Where do you intend to go? He would say: I intend to go to this one who is coming forth. They would say to him: Don't you believe in our Lord? He would say: There is nothing hidden about our Lord. They would say: Kill him. Then some amongst them would say: Has your master (Dajjal) not forbidden you to kill anyone without (his consent)? And so they would take him to the Dajjal and when the believer would see him, he would say: O people. he is the Dajjil about whom Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has informed (us). The Dajjal would then order for breaking his head and utter (these words): Catch hold of him and break his head. He would be struck even on his back and on his stomach. Then the Dajjal would ask him: Don't you believe in me? He would say: You are a false Masih. He would then order him to be torn (into pieces) with a saw from the parting of his hair up to his legs. After that the Dajjal would walk between the two pieces. He would then say to him: Stand, and he would stand erect. He would then say to him: Don't you believe in me? And the person would say: It has only added to my insight concerning you (that you are really the Dajjal). He would then say: O people, he would not behave with anyone amongst people (in such a manner) after me. The Dajjal would try to catch hold of him so that he should kill him (again). The space between his neck and collar bone would be turned into copper and he would find no means to kill him. So he would catch hold of him by his hand and feet and throw him (into the air) and the people would think as if he had been thrown in the Hell-Fire whereas he would be thrown in Paradise. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He would be the most eminent amongst persons in regard to martyrdom in the eye of the Lord of the world.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 20: THE DAJJAL WOULD BE VERY INSIGNIFICANT IN THE EYE OF ALLAH, THE MAJESTIC AND GLORIOUS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7020"> Book 041, Number 7020: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mughira b. Shu'ba reported: No one asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) more about Dajjil than I asked him. He said: He should not be a source of worry to you for he would not be able to do any harm to you. I said: Allah's Messenger, it is alleged that he would have along with him (abundance of) food and water. Thereupon he said: He would be very insignificant in the eye of Allah (even) with all this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7021"> Book 041, Number 7021: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mughira b. Shu'ba reported that none asked Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) about Dajjal more than I asked him. I (one of the narrators other than Mughlra b. Shu'ba) said: What'did you ask? Mughira replied: I said that the people alleged that he would have a mountain load of bread and mutton and rivers of water. Thereupon he said: He would be more insignificant in the eye of Allah compared with all this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7022"> Book 041, Number 7022: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Isma'il through other chains of transmitters with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 21: THE APPEARANCE OF THE DAJJAL AND HIS STAY UPON THE EARTH AND THE DESCENT OF JESUS AND HIS KILLING HIM (DAJJAL) AND THE DEPARTURE OF GOOD PEOPLE OF STRONG CONVICTION AND THE SURVIVAL OF THE WICKED PEOPLE AND THE WORSHIP OF IDOLS AND THE BLOWING OF THE TRUMPET AND THE RAISING UP FROM THE GRAVES </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7023"> Book 041, Number 7023: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>'Abdullah b. 'Amr reported that a person came to him and said: What is this hadith that you narrate that the Last Hour would come at such and such time? Thereupon he said: Hallowed be Allah, there is no god but Allah (or the words to the same effect). I have decided that I would not narrate anything to anyone now. I had only said that you would see after some time an important event that the (sacred) House (Ka'ba) would be burnt and it would happen and definitely happen. He then reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The Dajjal would appear in my Ummah and he would stay (in the world) for forty-I cannot say whether he meant forty days, forty months or forty years. And Allah would then send Jesus son of Mary who would resemble 'Urwa b Mas'ud. He (Jesus Christ) would chase him and kill him. Then people would live for seven years that there would be no ran. cour between two persons. Then Allah would send cold wind from the side of Syria that none would survive upon the earth having a speck of good in him or faith in him but he would die, so much so that even if some amongst you were to enter the innermost part of the mountain, this wind would reach that place also and that would cause his heath. I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Only the wicked people would survive and they would be as careless as birds with the charactertistics of beasts. They would never appreciate the good nor condemn evil. Then the Satan would come to them in human form and would say: Don't you respond? And they would say: What do you order us? And he would command them to worship the idols but, in spite of this, they would have abundance of sustenance and lead comfortable lives. Then the trumpet would be blown and no one would hear that but he would bend hfs neck to one side and raise it from the other side and the first one to hear that trumpet would be the person who would be busy in setting right the tank meant for providing water to the camels. He would swoon and the other people would also swoon, then Allah would send or He would cause to send rain which would be like dew and there would grow out of it the bodies of the people. Then the second trumpet would be blown and they would stand up and begin to look (around). Then it would be said: O people, go to your Lord, and make them stand there. And they would be questioned. Then it would be said: Bring out a group (out of them) for the Hell-Fire. And then it would be asked: How much? It would be said: Nine hundred and ninty-nine out of one thousand for the Hell-Fire and that would be the day which would make the children old because of its terror and that would be the day about which it has been said:" On the day when the shank would be uncovered" (lxviii. 42).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7024"> Book 041, Number 7024: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ya'qub b. 'Asim b. Urwa b. Mas'ud reported: I heard a person saying to 'Abdullah b. Amr: You say that the Last Hour would come at such and such time, whereupon he said: I had made up my mind that I would not narrate anything to you. I only said: But you would soon see after some time a very significant affair, for example the burning of the House (Ka'ba). Shu'ba said like this and 'Abdullah b Amr reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said: The Dajjal would appear in my Ummah. And in another hadith (the words are): None would survive who would have even a speck of faith in his heart, but he would be dead. Muhammad b. ja'far reported that Shu'ba narrated to him this hadith many a time and I also read it out to him many a time.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7025"> Book 041, Number 7025: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. 'Amr reported: I committed to memory a hadith from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and I did not forget it after I had heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The first sign (nut of the signs of the appearance of the Dajjal) would be the appearance of the sun from the west, the appearance of the beast before the people in the forenoon and whkch of the two hap- pens first, the second one would follow immediately after that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7026"> Book 041, Number 7026: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Zur'a reported that three persons amongst Muslims had been sitting in Medina in the presence of Marwan b. Hakam and they heard him narrate these signs from him and the first amongst them was the appearance of the Dajjal. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr reported that Marwin said nothing (particular in this connection). I, however, heard a hadith from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and I did not forget that after I had heard that from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and he reported a hadith like the foregoing.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7027"> Book 041, Number 7027: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Zur'a reported that there was a discussion in the presence of Marwan about the Last Hour, and Abdullah b. 'Amr said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying. The rest of the hadith is the same, but there is no mention of forenoon.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 22: THE HADITH PERTAINING TO THE SPY OF THE DAJJAL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7028"> Book 041, Number 7028: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Amir b. Sharahil Sha'bi Sha'b Hamdan reported that he asked Fatima, daughter of Qais and sister of ad-Dahhak b. Qais and she was the first amongst the emigrant women: Narrate to me a hadith which you had heard directly from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and there is no extra link in between them. She said: Very well, if you like, I am prepared to do that, and he said to her: Well, do It and narrate that to me. She said: I married the son of Mughira and he was a chosen young man of Quraish at that time, but he fell as a martyr in the first Jihad (fighting) on the side of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). When I became a widow, 'Abd al-Rahman b. Auf, one amongst the group of the Companions of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), sent me the proposal of marriage. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) also sent me such a message for his freed slave Usama b. Zaid. And it had been conveyed to me that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) had said (about Usama): He who loves me should also love Usima. When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) talked to me (about this matter), I said: My affairs are in your hand. You may marry me to anyone whom you like. He said: You better shift now to the house of Umm Sharik, and Umm Sharik was a rich lady from amongst the Anqir. She spent generously for the cause of Allah and entertained guests very hospitably. I said: Well, I will do as you like. He said: Do not do that for Umm Sharik is a woman who is very frequently vizited by guests and I do not like that your head may be uncovered or the cloth may be removed from your shank and the strangers may catch sight of them which you abhor. You better shift to the house of your cousin 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. Umm Maktum and he is a person of the Bani Fihr branch of the Quraish, and he belonged to that tribe (to which Fatima) belonged. So I shifted to that house, and when my period of waiting was over, I heard the voice of an announcer making an announcement that the prayer would be observed in the mosque (where) congregational prayer (is observed).</p> <p> So I set out towards that mosque and observed prayer along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and I was in the row of the women which was near the row of men. When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had finished his prayer, he sat on the pulpit smiling and said: Every worshipper should keep sitting at his place. He then said: Do you know why I had asked you to assemble? They said: Allah and His Messenger know best. He said: By Allah. I have not made you assemble for exhortation or for a warning, but I have detained you here, for Tamim Dari, a Christian, who came and accepted Islam, told me something, which agrees with what I was-telling, yuu about the Dajjal. He narrated to me that he had sailed in a ship along with thirty men of Bani Lakhm and Bani Judham and had been tossed by waves in the ocean for a month. Then these (waves) took them (near) the land within the ocean (island) at the time of sunset. They sat in a small side-boat and entered that Island. There was a beast with long thick hair (and because of these) they could not distinguish his face from his back. They said: Woe to you, who can you be? Thereupon it said: I am al-Jassasa. They said: What is al-Jassasa? And it said: O people, go to this person in the monastery as he is very much eager to know about you. He (the narrator) said: When it named a person for us we were afraid of it lest it should be a Devil. Then we hurriedly went on till we came to that monastery and found a well-built person there with his hands tied to his neck and having iron shackles between his two legs up to the ankles. We said: Woe be upon thee, who are you? And he said: You would soon come to know about me. but tell me who are you. We said: We are people from Arabia and we embarked upon a boat but the sea-waves had been driving us for one month and they brought as near this island. We got Into the side-boats and entered this island and here a beast met us with profusely thick hair and because of the thickness of his hair his face could not be distinguished from his back. We said: Woe be to thee, who are you? It said: I am al- Jassasa. We said: What is al-Jassasa? And it said: You go to this very person in the monastery for he is eagerly waiting for you to know about you. So we came to you in hot haste fearing that that might be the Devil. He (that chained person) said: Tell me about the date-palm trees of Baisan. We &aid: About what aspect of theirs do you seek information? He said: I ask you whether these trees bear fruit or not.</p> <p> We said: Yes Thereupon he said: I think these would not bear fruits. He said: Inform me about the lake of Tabariyya? We said: Which aspect of it do you want to know? He said: Is there water in it? They said: There is abundance of water in it. Thereupon he said: I think it would soon become dry. He again said: Inform me about the spring of Zughar. They said: Which aspect of it you want to know? He (the chained person) said: Is there water in it and does it irrigate (the land)? We said to him: Yes, there is abundance of water in it and the inhabitants (of Medina) irrigate (land) with the help of it, He said: Inform me about the unlettered Prophet; what has he done? We said: He has come out from Mecca and has settled In Yathrib (Medina). He said: Do the Arabs fight against him? We said: Yes. He said: How did he deal with him? We informed him that he had overcome those in his neighbourhood and they had submitted themselves before him. Thereupon he said to us: Had it actually happened? We said: Yes. Thereupon he said: If it is so that is better for them that they should show obedience to him. I am going to tell you about. myself and I am Dajjal and would be soon permitted to get out and so I shall get out and travel in the land, and will not spare any town where I would not stay for forty nights except Mecca and Medina as these two (places) are prohibited (areas) for me and I would not make an attempt to enter any one of these two. An angel with a sword in his hand would confront me and would bar my way and there would be angels to guard every passage leading to it; then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) striking the pulpit with the help of the end of his staff said: This implies Taiba meaning Medina. Have I not, told you an account (of the Dajjal) like this? 'The people said: Yes, and this account narrated by Tamim Dari was liked by me for it corroborates the account which I gave to you in regard to him (Dajjal) at Medina and Mecca. Behold he (Dajjal) is in the Syrian sea (Mediterranian) or the Yemen sea (Arabian sea). Nay, on the contrary, he As In the east, he is in the east, he is in the east, and he pointed with his hand towards the east. I (Fatima bint Qais) said: I preserved It In my mind (this narration from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7029"> Book 041, Number 7029: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Al-Sha'bi reported: We visited Fatima b. Qais and she served us fresh dates which are called rutab and she also served us barley. I asked her about that woman in whose case three divorces had been pronounced as to how much time she should count as the waiting period. She said: My husband pronounced three divorces in my case and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permitted me to spend any waiting period in my family. (It was during this period) that announcement was made for the people to observe prayer in the bigger Mosque. I went there along with people and I was in the front row meant for women and it was adjacent to the last row of men and I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) deliver sermon sitting on the pulpit. He said: The cousin of Tamim (Dari) sailed in the ocean. The rest of the hadith is the same but with this addition:" (I see) as if I am looking to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) pointing his rod towards the land (and saying): It is Taiba, i. e. Medina."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7030"> Book 041, Number 7030: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Tamim Dari came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and informed Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he sailed in an ocean and his ship lost direction and thus landed at an island. They moved about in that land in search of water. There they saw a person who had been pulling his hair. The rest of the hadith is the same. And he (Dajjal) said: If I were to be permitted to set out I would have covered all the lands except Taiba. Then Allah's Messerger (may peace be upon him) brought (Tamim Dari) before the public and he narrated to them and said: That is Taiba and that is the Dajjal.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7031"> Book 041, Number 7031: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Fatima b. Qais reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sat on the pulpit and said: O people, Tamim Dari has reported to me that some persons of his tribe sailed in the ocean in a boat and it capsised and then some of them travelled on one of the planks of the boat and they went to an island in the ocean. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7032"> Book 041, Number 7032: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There will be no land which would not be covered by the Dajjal but Mecca and Medina, and there would no passage out of the passages leading to them which would not be guarded by angels arranged in rows. Then he (the Dajjal) would appear in a barren place adjacent to Medina and it would rock three times that every unbeliever and hypocrite would get out of it towards him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7033"> Book 041, Number 7033: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Anas that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said this but with this addition that (the Dajjal would come) and pitch his tent in the waste-land of Juruf and thus there would come out of (the city) every hypocrite, man and woman.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 23: THE REMAINING AHADITH PERTAINING TO THE DAJJAL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7034"> Book 041, Number 7034: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The Dajjal would be followed by seventy thousand Jews of Isfahan wearing Persian shawls.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7035"> Book 041, Number 7035: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Umm Sharik reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The people would run away from the Dajjal seeking shelter in the mountains. She said: Where would be the Arabs then in that day? He said: They would be small in number.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7036"> Book 041, Number 7036: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Juraij with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7037"> Book 041, Number 7037: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Qatada reported: We used to go to Imran b. Husain passing in front of Hisham b. 'Amir. He, one day, said: You pass by me (in order) to go to some per- sons but (amongst ttie living persons) none remained in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) more than I and none knows more ahadith than I. I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would be no creation (creating more trouble) than the Dajjal right from the creation of Adam to the Last Hour.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7038"> Book 041, Number 7038: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of 'Imran b. Husain with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7039"> Book 041, Number 7039: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said: Hasten to do good deeds before six things happen: the rising of the sun from the west, the smoke, the Dajjal, the beast and (the death) of one of you or the general turmoil.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7040"> Book 041, Number 7040: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Hasten in performing these good deeds (before these) six things (happen): (the appearance) of tribe Dijjal, the smoke, the beast of the earth, the rising of the sun from the west, the general turmoil (leadina to large-scale massacre) and death of masses and individuals.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7041"> Book 041, Number 7041: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Qatada through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 24: THE EXCELLENCE OF WORSHIP IN THE PERIOD OF GENERAL TURMOIL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7042"> Book 041, Number 7042: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ma'qil b. Yasar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Worshiping during the period of widespread turmoil is like emigration towards me.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 25: APPROACH OF THE LAST HOUR </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7043"> Book 041, Number 7043: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would affect (most terribly) the wicked persons.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7044"> Book 041, Number 7044: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been reported by Sahl b. Sa'd that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I and the Last Hour are (close to each other) like this (and he, in order to explain it) pointed (by joining his) forefinger, (one) next to the thumb and the middle finger (together).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7045"> Book 041, Number 7045: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) said: I and the Last Hour have been sent like this. Shu'ba said: I heard Qatada as saying in his narration: The excellence of one over the other. And I do not know whether he narrated it from Anas or Qatada himself said so.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7046"> Book 041, Number 7046: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Shu'ba reported: I heard Qatada and Abu Tayyab narrating that both of them heard Anas as narrating that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I and the Last Hour have been sent like this, and Shu'ba drew his forefinger and middle finger near each other while narrating it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7047"> Book 041, Number 7047: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7048"> Book 041, Number 7048: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying like this, but he narrated it through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7049"> Book 041, Number 7049: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I and the Last Hour have been sent like this and (he while doing it) joined the forefinger with the middle finger.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7050"> Book 041, Number 7050: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that when the desert Arabs came to Allable Messenger (may peace be upon him) they asked about the Last Hour as to when that would come. And he looked towards the youngest amongst them and said: If he lives he would not grow very old that he would find your Last Hour coming to you the would see you dying).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7051"> Book 041, Number 7051: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that a person asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as to when the Last Hour would come. He had in his presence a young boy of the Ansar who was called Mabammad. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon bion) said: If this young boy lives. he may not grow very old till (he would see) the Last Hour coming to you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7052"> Book 041, Number 7052: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that a person asked Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him): When would the Last Hour come? Thereupon Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) kept quiet for a while. then looked at a young boy in his presence belonging to the tribe of Azd Shanilwa and he said: If this boy lives he would not grow very old till the Last Hour would come to you. Anas said that this young boy was of our age daring those days.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7053"> Book 041, Number 7053: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported: A young boy of Mughira b. Shu'ba happened to pass by (the Holy Prophet) and he was of my age Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be apon him) said: If he lives long he would not grow very old till the Last Hour would come (to the old People of this generation).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7054"> Book 041, Number 7054: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour would come (so sudden) that a person would be milking the she- camel and the (milk) would not reach the brim of the vessel that the Last Hour would come, and the two persons would be engaged in buying and selling of the clothes and their bargain would not be struck before the Last Hour would come. And someone would be setting his tank in order and he would have hardly set it right when the Last Hour would come.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 26: THE INTERVAL BETWEEN TWO BLOWINGS OF THE TRUMPET </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7055"> Book 041, Number 7055: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Between the two blowiings of the trumpet (there would be an interval of forty). They said: Abu Huraira, do you mean forty days? He said: I cannot say anything. They said: Do you mean fortv months? He said: I cannot say anything They said: Do you mean forty years? He said: I cannot say anything. Then Allah would cause the water to, descend from the sky and they (people) will sprout like vegetable The only thing in a man which would not decay would be one bone (spinal chord) from which the whole frame would be reconstituted on the Day of Resurrection.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7056"> Book 041, Number 7056: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: The earth would consume every son of Adam except his spinal chord from which his body would be reconstituted (on the Day of Resurrection).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="041.7057"> Book 041, Number 7057: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported so many ahadith from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and amongst these one was this that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There is a bone in the human being which the earth would never consume and it is from this that new bodies would be reconstituted (on the Day of Resurrection). They said: Allah's Messenger, which bone is that? Thereupon he said: It is the spinal bone.</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-5204310332638065295?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-69566973033191724452008-03-10T10:14:00.000-07:002008-03-10T10:15:34.031-07:00Book 40: The Book Pertaining to Paradise, Its Description, Its Bounties and Its Intimates (Kitab Al-Jannat wa Sifat Na'imiha wa Ahliha)<p><strong> Chapter 1: </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6778"> Book 040, Number 6778: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported: The Paradise is surrounded by hardships and the Hell-Fire is surrounded by temptations.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6779"> Book 040, Number 6779: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6780"> Book 040, Number 6780: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying that: Allah the Exalted and Glorious, said: I have prepared for My pious servants which no eye has ever seen, and no ear has ever heard, and no human heart has ever perceived but it is testified by the Book of Allah. He then recited:" No soul knows what comfort has been concealed from them, as a reward for what they did". (xxxii. 17)</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6781"> Book 040, Number 6781: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said: I have prepared for My pious servants which no eye (has ever) seen, no ear has (ever) heard and no human heart has ever perceived those bounties leaving apart (those bounties) about which Allah has informed you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6782"> Book 040, Number 6782: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said: I have prepared for My pious servants which the eye has seen not, and the ear has heard not and no human heart has ever perceived such bounties leaving aside those about which Allah has informed you. He then recited:" No soul knows what comfort has been hidden for thein".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6783"> Book 040, Number 6783: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sahl b. Sa'd as-Sa'idi reported: I was in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he gave a description of Paradise and then Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) concluded with these words: There would be bounties which the eye has not seen and the ear has not heard and no human heart has ever perceived them. He then recited this verse:" They forsake (their) beds, calling upon their Lord in fear and in hope, and spend out of what We have given them. So no soul knows what refreshment of the eyes is hidden for them: a reward for what they did" (xxxii. 16-17)</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: THERE IS IN PARADISE A TREE UNDER THE SHADOW OF WHICH A RIDER CAN TRAVEL FOR A HUNDRED YEARS AND EVEN THEN HE WOULD NOT BE ABLE TO COVER IT </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6784"> Book 040, Number 6784: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: In Paradise, there is a tree under the shadow of which a rider can travel for a hundred years.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6785"> Book 040, Number 6785: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters with the addition of these words:" He will not be able to cover this distance."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6786"> Book 040, Number 6786: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sahl b. Sa'd reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: In Paradise, there is a tree under the shadow of which a rider can travel for a hundred years without covering (the distance) completely. This hadith has also been transmitted on the authority of Abu Sa'id al-Khudri that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) is reported to have said: In Paradise, there is a tree under the shadow of which a rider of a fine and swift-footed horse would travel for a hundred years without covering the distance completely. There would be the pleasure of Allah for the inmates of Paradise and He would never be annoyed with them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6787"> Book 040, Number 6787: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said that Allah would say to the inmates of Paradise: O, Dwellers of Paradise, and they would say in response: At thy service and pleasure, our Lord, the good is in Thy Hand. He (the Lord) would say: Are you well pleased now? They would say: Why should we not be pleased, O Lord, when Thou hast given us what Thou hast not given to any of Thy creatures? He would, however, say: May I not give you (something) even more excellent than that? And they would say: 0 Lord, what thing can be more excellent than this? And He would say: I shall cause My pleasure to alight upon you and I shall never be afterwards annoyed with you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: THE INMATES OF PARADISE WOULD SEE THE INMATES OF THE UPPER APARTMENT AS ARE SEEN THE PLANETS IN THE SKY </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6788"> Book 040, Number 6788: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sahl b. Sa'd reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The inmates of Paradise will look to the upper apartment of Paradise as you see the planets in the sky. I narrated this hadith to Nu'man b. Abi 'Ayyash and he said: I heard Abu Sa'id al-Khudri as saying: As you see the shining planets in the eastern and western (sides of) horizon.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6789"> Book 040, Number 6789: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Hazim through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6790"> Book 040, Number 6790: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The inmates of Paradise would see the inmates of the apartment over them just as you see the shining planets which remain in the eastern and the western horizon because of the superiority some have over others. They said: Allah's Messenger, would in these abodes of Apostles others besides them not be able to reach? He said: Yes, they will, by Him, in Whose hand is my life, those who believe in God and acknowledge the Truth, will reach them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: HE WHO WOULD LOVE TO HAVE A GLIMPSE OF THE SACRED FACE OF THE HOLY PROPHET (MAY PEACE BE UPON HIM) EVEN AT THE COsT OF HIS WHOLE PROPERTY AND HIS FAMILY </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6791"> Book 040, Number 6791: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The people most loved by me from amongst my Ummah would be those who would come after me but everyone amongst them would have the keenest desire to catch a glimpse of me even at the cost of his family and wealth.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: THERE IS A STREET IN PARADISE WHERE THE INMATES OF PARADISE WOULD GET FAVOUR AND GRACE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6792"> Book 040, Number 6792: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: In Paradise there is a street to which they would come every Friday. The north wind will blow and would scatter fragrance on their faces and on their clothes and would add to their beauty and loveliness, and then they would go back to their family after having an added lustre to their beauty and loveliness, and their family would say to them: By Allah, you have been increased in beauty and loveliness after leaving us, and they would say: By Allah, you have also increased in beauty and loveliness after us.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: THE FIRST GROUP THAT WOULD BE ADMITTED TO PARADISE WOULD BE LIKE THE FACE OF THE FULL MOON AND THE DESCRIPTION OF THEIR QUALITIES AND THEIR SPOUSES </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6793"> Book 040, Number 6793: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Muhammad reported that some (persons) stated with a sense of pride and some discussed whether there would be more men in Paradise or more women. It was upon this that Abu Huraira reported that Abu'l Qasim (the Holy Prophet) (may peace be upon him) said: The (members) of the first group to get into Paradise would have their faces as bright as full moon during the night, and the next to this group would have their faces as bright as the shining stars in the sky, and every person would have two wives and the marrow of their shanks would glimmer beneath the flesh and there would be none without a wife in Paradise.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6794"> Book 040, Number 6794: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6795"> Book 040, Number 6795: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The (members of the) first group which would get into Paradise will have their faces as bright as stars in the sky. They would neither pass water, nor void excrement, nor will they suffer from catarrh, nor will they spit, and their combs would be made of gold, and their sweat will be musk, the fuel of their brazier will be aloes, and their wives will be large-eyed maidens and their form would be alike as one single person after the form of their father (Adam) sixty cubits tall.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6796"> Book 040, Number 6796: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The first group of my Ummah to get into Paradise would be like a full moon in the night. Then those who would be next to them; they would be like the most significantly glittering stars in regard to brightness, then after them (others) in ranks. They would neither void excrement, nor pass water, nor suffer from catarrh, nor would they spit. And their combs would be made of gold, and the fuel of their braziers would be aloes and their sweat would be musk and their form would be the form of one single person according to the length of their father sixty cubits tall. This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Ibn Abi Shaiba with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: THE DESCRIPTION OF PARADISE AND THE REMEMBRANCE OF ALLAH BY ITS INMATES MORNING AND EVENING </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6797"> Book 040, Number 6797: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammam b. Munabbih reported: These are some of the ahidith which Abu Huraira reported from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and one is this that he is reported to have said: The (members of the) first group that would be admitted to Paradise would have their faces as bright as full moon during the night. They would neither spit nor suffer catarrh, nor void excrement. They would have their utensils and their combs made of gold and silver and the fuel of their braziers would be aloes and their sweat would be musk and every one of them would have two spouses (so beautiful) that the marrow of their shanks would be visible through the flesh. There would be no dissension amongst them and no enmity in their hearts. Their hearts would be like one heart, glorifying Allah morning and evening.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6798"> Book 040, Number 6798: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying that the inmates of Paradise would eat and drink but would neither spit, nor pass water, nor void excrement, nor suffer catarrah. It was said: Then, what would happen with food? Thereupon he said: They would belch and sweat (and it would be over with their food), and their sweat would be that of musk and they would glorify and praise Allah as easily as you breathe.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6799"> Book 040, Number 6799: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of A'mash with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6800"> Book 040, Number 6800: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that the inmates of Paradise would eat therein and they would also drink, but they would neither void excrement, nor suffer catarrh, nor pass water, and their eating (would be digested) in the form of belching and their sweat would be musk aged they would glorify and praise Allah as easily ai you breathe.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6801"> Book 040, Number 6801: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Jabir with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: THE EVERLASTING BLISS FOR THE INMATES OF PARADISE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6802"> Book 040, Number 6802: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who would get into Paradise (would be made to enjoy such an everlasting) bliss that he would neither become destitute, nor would his clothes wear out, nor his youth would decline.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6803"> Book 040, Number 6803: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri and Abu Huraira both reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would be an announcer (in Paradise) who would make this announcement: Verily I there is in store for you (everlasting) health and that you should never fall ill and that you live (for ever) and do not die at all. And that you would remain young and never grow old. And that you would always live in affluent circumstances and never become destitute, as words of Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, are:" And it would be announced to them: This is the Paradise. You have been made to inherit it for what you used to do". (VII; 43)</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 9: THE DESCRIPTION OF THE TENTS FOR THE INMATES OF PARADISE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6804"> Book 040, Number 6804: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Bakr b. Abdullah b. Qais reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that in Paradise there would be for a believer a tent of a single hollowed pearl the breadth of which would be sixty miles. It would be meant for a believer and the believers would go around it and none would be able to see the others.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6805"> Book 040, Number 6805: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Bakr b. Abdullah b. Qais reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that in Paradise there would be a tent made of a single hollowed pearl, the breadth of which would be sixty miles from all sides and there would live a family in each corner and the other would not be able to see the believer who goes around them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6806"> Book 040, Number 6806: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Abu Bakr b. Abu Musa b. Qais who, on the authority of his father, reported the Apostle (may peace be upon him) to have said that there would be a tent made of a pearl whose height towards the sky would be sixty miles. In each corner, there would be a fanaily of the believer, out of sight for the others.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 10: WHAT RIVERS OF THE WORLD WOULD BE FOUND IN PARADISE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6807"> Book 040, Number 6807: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Saihan, Jaihan, Euphrates and Nile are all among the rivers of Paradise.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 11: THERE WOULD ENTER PARADISE SOME PEOPLE WHOSE HEARTS WOULD BE'LIKE THOSE OF BIRDS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6808"> Book 040, Number 6808: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would enter Paradise people whose hearts would be like those of the hearts of birds.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6809"> Book 040, Number 6809: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, created Adam in His own image with His length of sixty cubits, and as He created him He told him to greet that group, and that was a party of angels sitting there, and listen to the response that they give him, for it would form his greeting and that of his offspring. He then went away and said: Peace be upon you! They (the angels) said: May there be peace upon you and the Mercy of Allah, and they made an addition of" Mercy of Allah". So he who would get into Paradise would get in the form of Adarn, his length being sixty cubits, then the people who followed him continued to diminish in size up to this day.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 12: THE DESCRIPTION OF HELL AND THE INTENSITY OF ITS HEAT AND TORMENTS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6810"> Book 040, Number 6810: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Hell would he brought on that da (the Day of judgment) with seventy bridles and every bridle would be controlled by seventy angels.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6811"> Book 040, Number 6811: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abil Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as seying: The fire which sons of Adam burn is only one-seventieth part of the Fire of Hell. His Companions said: By Allah, even ordinary fire would have been enough (to burn people). Thereupon he said: It is sixty-nine parts in excess of (the heat of) fire in this world each of them being equivalent to their heat.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6812"> Book 040, Number 6812: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abn Huraira through another chain of transmitters with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6813"> Book 040, Number 6813: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported: We were in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that we heard a terrible sound. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Do you know what (sound) is this? We said: Allah and His Messenger know best. Thereupon he said: That is a stone which was thrown seventy years before in Hell and it has'been constantly slipping down and now it has reached its base.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6814"> Book 040, Number 6814: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abfi Huraira with the same chain of transmitters but with this change of wording that the Holy Prophet (may. peace be upon him) said: It reached at its base and you heard its sound.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6815"> Book 040, Number 6815: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Samura b. Jundub reported Allah's Apostle (may peace -be upon him) as saying: There will be some to whose ankels the fire will reach, some to whose knees, some to whose waist the fire will reach, and some to whose collar-bone the fire will reach.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6816"> Book 040, Number 6816: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Samura b. Jundub reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would be among them those to whom the fire will reach up to their ankels and to some of them the fire would reach their knees and to some it would reach their waists and to some it would reach up to their collar-bones.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6817"> Book 040, Number 6817: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 13: THE HAUGHTY AND THE PROUD WOULD GET INTO THE FIRE OF HELL AND THE HUMBLE AND MEEK WOULD GET INTO PARADISE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6818"> Book 040, Number 6818: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: There was a dispute between the Hell and the Paradise and it (the Hell) said: The haughty and the proud would find abode in me. And the Paradise said: The meek and the humble would find their abode in me. Thereupon Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, (addressing the Hell) said: You are (the means) of My punishment by which I punish those of My servants whom I wish. (And addressing the Paradise) He said: You are only My Mercy by means of which 1 shall show mercy to those whom I wish, but each one of you would be full.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6819"> Book 040, Number 6819: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: The Hell and the Paradise fell into dispute and the Hell said: I have been dis- tinguished by the proud and the haughty. And the Paradise said: What is the matter with me that the meek and the humble amongst people and the downtrodden and the simple enter me? Thereupon Allah said to the Paradise: You are (the means) of My Mercy whereby I show mercy to those of My servants whom 1 wish, and He said to the Hell: You are (the means) of punishment whereby 1 punish those of My servants whoml wish. Both of you will be full. The Hell will riot be filled up until Allah puts down His foot in it. The Hell would say: Enough, enough, enough, and at that time it will be filled up, all its parts integrated together.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6820"> Book 040, Number 6820: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Paradise and the Hell disputed with each other. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6821"> Book 040, Number 6821: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammam b. Munabbih reported that Abu Huraira narrated to them some ahadith of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and one of them is this that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The Paradise and the Hell fell into dispute and the Hell said: 1 have been distinguished for accommodating (the haughty and proud in me), and the Paradise said: What is the matter that the meek and the humble and the downtrodden and simple would find an abode in me? Thereupon Allah said to Paradise: You are a (means) of My Mercy. 1 shall show mercy through you to one whom I will from amongst My servants. And lie said to the Hell: You are a (sign) of My chastisement and I shall chastise through you anyone whom I will from amongst My servants and both of you, would be full. And as regards the Hell it would not be full until Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, places His foot therein, and it would say: Enough, enough, enough, and it would be then full and the one part would draw very close to the other one and Allah would not treat unjustly anyone amongst His creation and He would create another creation for the Paradise (to accommodate it).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6822"> Book 040, Number 6822: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The Paradise and the Hell disputed with each other. The rest of the hadith is the same as transmitted by Abu Huraira up to the words'." It is essential for Me to fill up both of you."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6823"> Book 040, Number 6823: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said that the Hell would continue to say: Is there anything more, until Allah, the Exalted and High, would place His foot therein and that would say: Enough, enough, by Your Honour, and some parts of it would draw close to the other.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6824"> Book 040, Number 6824: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6825"> Book 040, Number 6825: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abd al-Wahhab b. Ata' reported in connection with the words of Allah, the Exalted and the Glorious: We would say to Hell on the Day of Ressurection: Have you been completely filled up? and it would say: Is there anything -more? And he stated on the authority of Anas b. Malik that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: (The sinners) would be thrown therein and it would continue to say: Is there anything more, until Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, would keep His foot there- in and some of its part would draw close to the other and it would say: Enough, enough, by Thy Honour and by Thy Dignity, and there would be enough space in Paradise until Allah would create a new creation and He would make them accommo- date that spare place in Paradise.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6826"> Book 040, Number 6826: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would be left some space in Paradise as Allah would like that to be left. Then Allah would create another creation as He would like.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6827"> Book 040, Number 6827: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Death would be brought on the Day of Resurrection. in the form of a white-coloured ram. Abu Kuraib made this addition: Then it would be made to stand between the Paradise and the Hell. So far as the rest of the hadith is concerned there is perfect agreement (between the two narrators) and it would be said to the inmates of Paradise: Do you recognise this? They would raise up their necks and look towards it and say: Yes, ' it is death. Then it would be said to the inmates of Hell-Fire.. Do you recognise this? And they would raise up their necks and look and say: Yes, it is death. Then command would be given for slaughtering that and then it would be said: 0 inmates of Paradise,, there is an everlasting life for you and no death. And then (addressing) to the inmates of the Hell-Fire, it would be said: 0 inmates of Hell-Fire, there is an everlasting living for you and no death. Allah's Messenger (may peace be u@on him) then recited this verse pointing with his hand to this (material) world:" Warn them, this Day of dismay, and when their affairs would be decided and they would be un- mindful and they believe not" (xix. 39).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6828"> Book 040, Number 6828: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When the inmates of Paradise would be admitted to Paradise and the inmates of Hell would be admitted to Hell, it would be said (to the inmates of Paradise): 0 inmates of Paradise. The rest of the hadith is the same but with this variation (that he only) said. That is the word of Allah, the Exalted. And he did not say: Then Allah's Mes- senger (may peace be upon him) recited, and he did not make a mention of his having pointed with his hand towards the (material) world.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6829"> Book 040, Number 6829: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah would admit the inmates of Paradise into Paradise and the inmates of Hell into Hell. Then the announcer would stand between them and say: 0 inmates of Paradise, there is no death for you,0 inmates of Hell, there is no death for you. You would live for ever therein.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6830"> Book 040, Number 6830: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Umar b. Muhammad b. Zaid b. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar b. al-Khattab reported on the authority of his father Abdullah b. Umar that Allah's Messenger (may peace big upon him) said: When the inmates of Paradise would go to Paradise and the inmates of Hell would go to Hell, death would be called and it would be placed between the Paradise and the Hell and then slaughtered and then the announcer would announce: 0 inmates of Paradise, no death 0 Inmates of Hell-Fire, no death. And it would in. crease the delight of the inmates of Paradise and it would increase the grief of the inmates of Hell-Fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6831"> Book 040, Number 6831: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> It is transmitted on the authority of Abu Huraira that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The molar tooth of an unbeliever or the canine teeth of an unbeliever will be like Ubud and the thickness of his skin a three night's journey.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6832"> Book 040, Number 6832: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported directly from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he said: The distance of the two shoulders of the non-believer in Hell will be a three-day journey for a swift rider.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6833"> Book 040, Number 6833: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Haritha b. Wahb reported that he heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: May I not inform you about the inmates of Paradise? They said: Do this, of course. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Every humble person who is considered to be humble if he were to adjure In the name of Allah, He would fulfil it. He then said: May I not inform you about the denizens of Hell-Fire? They said: Yes. And he said: Every haughty, fat and proud (person).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6834"> Book 040, Number 6834: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6835"> Book 040, Number 6835: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Haritha b. Wahb al-KhuzaIi reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: May I not inform you about the inmates of Paradise? (And then informing about them) said: Every meek person who is considered to be humble and if they were to adjure in the name of Allah, Allah would certainly fulfil it. May I not inform you about the inmates of Hell-Fire? They are all proud, mean and haughty.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6836"> Book 040, Number 6836: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: Many a people with dishevelled hair are driven away from the door (but they are so pious) that if they are to swear in the name of Allah, He would definitely fulfil that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6837"> Book 040, Number 6837: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Zam'a reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) delivered an address and he made a mention of the dromedary and also made a mention of one (base person) who cut off Its hind legs, and he recited:" When the basest of them broke forth with mischief" (xei. 12). When A mischievous person, strong even because of the strength of a family like Abu Zam'a, broke forth. He then delivered instruction in regard to the women saying: There is amongst you who beats his woman, and in the narration on the authority of Abu Bakr, the words are: He flogs her like a slave-girl. And in the narration of Abu Kuraib (the words are): He flogs like a slave and then comforts his bed with the help of that at the end of the day, and he then advised in regard to laughing of people at the breaking of wind and said: One of you laughs at that which you yourself do.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6838"> Book 040, Number 6838: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: I saw 'Amr b. Luhayy b. Qam'a b. Khindif, brother of Bani Ka'b, dragging his Intestines in Fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6839"> Book 040, Number 6839: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sa'id b. Musayyib explained" al-bahira" as that animal which is not milked but for the idols. and none amongst the people milks them, and" as-sa'iba" as that animal which is let loose for the deities. Nothing is loaded over it, and Ibn Musayyib narrated that Abu Huraira stated that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I saw 'Amr b. 'Amir al-Khuzili dragging his intestines in fire and he was the first who devoted animals to deity.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6840"> Book 040, Number 6840: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Two are the types amongst the denizens of Hell, the one possessing whips like the tail of an ox and they flog people with their help. (The second one) the women who would be naked in spite of their being dressed, who are seduced (to wrong paths) and seduce others with their hair high like humps. These women would not get into Paradise and they would not perceive the odour of Paradise, although its frag- rance can be perceived from such and such distance (from great distance).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6841"> Book 040, Number 6841: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If you survive for a time you would certainly see people who would have whips in their hands like the tail of an ox. They would get up in the morning under the wrath of Allah and they would get into the evening with the anger of Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6842"> Book 040, Number 6842: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If you live for a time, you would certainly see people get up (in the morning) in the wrath of Allah and getting into the evening under the curse of Allah, and there would be in their hands (whips) like the tail of an ox.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 14: PERTAINING TO THE DESTRUCTION OF THE WORLD AND ASSEMBLING ON THE DAY OF RESURRECTION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6843"> Book 040, Number 6843: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated through five different chains of transmitters and all of them are narrated on the authority of Mustaurid, brother of Bani Fihr, that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: By Allah, this world (is so insigni- ficant in comparison) to the Hereafter that if one of you should dip his finger- (and wnile saying this Yahyg pointed with his forefinger) -in the ocean and then he should see as to what has stuck to it. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters also but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6844"> Book 040, Number 6844: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that she beard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The people would be assembled on the Day of Resurrection barefooted, naked and uncircumcised. I said: Allah's Messenger, will the male and the female be together on the Day and would they be looking at one another? Upon this Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: 'A'isha, the matter would be too serious for them to look to one another.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6845"> Book 040, Number 6845: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hatim b. Abi Saghira with the same chain of transmitters and there is no mention of the word" uncircum- cised."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6846"> Book 040, Number 6846: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Abbas reported that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) deliver an address and he was saying that they would meet Allah barefooted, naked and uncircumcised.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6847"> Book 040, Number 6847: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated through other chains of transmitters on the authority of Ibn Abbas, (and) the words are: While Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood up to deliver a sermon, he said: 0 people, Allah would make you assemble barefooted, naked and uncircumcised (and then recited the words of the Qur'an):" As We created you for the first time, We shall repeat it. (It is) a promise (binding) upon us. Lo! We are to perform it, and the first person who would be clothed on the Day of Resurrection would be (Hadrat) Ibrahim (peace be upon him)" and, behold! some persons of my Ummah would be brought and taken to the left and I would say: My Lord, they are my companions, and it would be said: You do not know what they did after you, and I would say just as the pious servant (Hadrat 'Isa) said:, I was a witness regarding them as I remained among them and Thou art a witness over everything, so if Thou chastisest them, they are Thy servants and if Thou for- givest them, Thou art Mighty, Wise" (v. 117-118). And it would be said to him: They constantly turned to their heels since you left them. This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Waki' and Mu'adh (and the words are):" What new things they fabricated."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6848"> Book 040, Number 6848: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying, The people will be assembled in three categories. Those desirous (of Paradise), fearing (Hell), coming two upon the came], three upon the camel, four upon the camel, ten upon the camel and the rest will be assembled, Hell-Fire being with them when they are at midday where they would spend the night and where they would spend the morning and where they would spend the evening.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 15: THE DESCRIPTION OF THE DAY OF RESURRECTION (MAY ALLAH SAVE US FROM ITS TERRORS) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6849"> Book 040, Number 6849: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: When the people would stand before Allah. the Lord of the worlds, each one of them would stand submerged into perspiration up to half of his ears, and there is no mention of the" day" in the badlth transmitted on the authority of Ibn Muthanni.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6850"> Book 040, Number 6850: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Ibn 'Umar but with a slight variation of wording (and the words are):" One of them would be completely submerged in perspiration up to half of his ears."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6851"> Book 040, Number 6851: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: The perspiration would spread on the Day of Resurrection upon the earth to the extent of seventy cubits and it would reach up to their mouths or up to their ears. Thaur is not sure (which words) he used (mouth or ears).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6852"> Book 040, Number 6852: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Miqdad b. Aswad reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) as saying: On the Day of Resurrection, the sun would draw so close to the people that there woum be left only a distance of one mile. Sulaim b. Amir said: By Allah, I do not know whether he meant by" mile" the mile of the (material) earth or dn instrument used for applying collyrium to the eye. (The Holy Prophet is, however, reported to have said): The people would be submerged in perspiration according to their deeds, some up to their. knees, Some up to the waist and some would have the bridle of perspiration and, while saying this, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) pointed his hand towards his mouth.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 16: THE QUALITIES BY WHICH THE INMATES OF PARADISE AND THE DENIZENS OF HELL CAN BE RECOGNISED IN THIS WORLD </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6853"> Book 040, Number 6853: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Iyad b. Him-ar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), while delivering a sermon one day, said: Behold, my Lord commanded me that I should teach you which you do not know and which He has taught me today. (He has instructed thus): The property which I have conferred upon them is lawful for them. I have created My servants as one having a natural inclination to the worship of Allah but it is Satan who turns them away from the right religion and he makes unlawful what has been declared lawful for them and he commands them to ascribe partnership with Re, although he has no justification for that. And verily, Allah looked towards the people of the world and He showed hatred for the Arabs and the non-Arabs, but with the exception of some remnants from the People of the Book. And He (further) said: I have sent thee (the Holy Prophet) in order to put you to test and put (those to test) through you. And I sent the Book to you which cannot be washed away by water, so that you may recite it while in the state of wakefulness or sleep. Verily, Allah commanded me to burn (kill) the Quraish. I said: My Lord, they would break my head (like the tearing) of bread, and Allah said: You turn them out as they turned you out, you fight against them and We shall help you in this, you should spend and you would be conferred upon. You send an army and I would send an army five times greater than that. Fight against those who disobey you along with those who obey you. The inmates of Paradise are three: One who wields authority and is just and fair, one who Is truthful and has been endowed with power to do good deeds. And the person who is merciful and kind hearted towards his relatives and to every pious Muslim, and one who does not stretch his hand in spite of having a large family to support. And He said: The inmates of Hell are five: the weak who lack power to (avoid evil), the (carefree) who pursue (everything irrespective of the fact that it is good or evil) and who do not have any care for their family or for their wealth. And those dishonest whose greed cannot be concealed even in the case of minor things. And the third. who betray you. morning and evening, in regard to your family and your property. He also made a mention of the miser and the liar and those who are in the habit of abusing people and using obscene and foul language. Abu Ghassan in his narration did not make mention of" Spend and there would be spent for you."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6854"> Book 040, Number 6854: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Qatada with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6855"> Book 040, Number 6855: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of 'Iyad b. Himar that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) gave an address one day. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6856"> Book 040, Number 6856: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Iyad. b. Himar reported tbat, while Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was delivering an address, he stated that Allah commanded me The rest of the hadith is the same, and there is an addition in it:" Allah revealed to me that we should be humble amongst ourselves and none should show pride upon the others, And it does not behove one to do so, and He also said: There are among you people to follow not caring a bit for their family and property. Qatada said: Abu Abdullah, would this happen? Thereupon he said: Yes. By Allah, I found this in the days of ignorance that a person grazed the goat of a tribe and did not find anyone but their slave-girl (and he did not spare her) but committed adultery with her.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 17: THE DEAD WOULD BE SHOWN HIS SEAT IN PARADISE AND HELL, AND THE AFFIRMATION OF THE TORMENT OF THE GRAVE AND SEEKING REFUGE FROM IT </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6857"> Book 040, Number 6857: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as say- ing: When any one of you dies, he is shown his seat (in the Hereafter) morning and evening; if he is amongst the inmates of Paradise (he is shown the seat) from amongst the inmates of Paradise and if he is one from amongst the denizens of Hell (he is shown the seat) from amongst the denizens of Hell, and it would be said to him: That is your seat until Allah raises you on the Day of Resurrection (and sends you to your proper seat).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6858"> Book 040, Number 6858: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: When a person dies, he is shown his seat morning and evening. If he is one amongst the inmates of Paradise (he is shown his seat) in Paradise and if he is one amongst the denizens of Hell-Fire (he is shown his seat) in the Hell-Fire. Then it is said to him: That is your seat where you would be sent on the Day of Resurrection.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6859"> Book 040, Number 6859: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: I did not hear this badith from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) directly but it was Zaid b. Thibit who narrated it from him. As Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) was going along with us towards the dwellings of Bani an-Najjar, riding upon his pony, it shied and he was about to fall. He found four, five or six graves there. He said: Who amongst you knows about those lying in the graves? A person said: It is I. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: In what state did they die? He said: They died as polytheists. He said: These people are passing through the ordeal in the graves. If it were not the reason that you would stop burying (your dead) in the graves on listening to the torment in the grave which I am listening to, I would have certainly made you hear that. Then turning his face towards us, he said: Seek refuge with Allah from the torment of Hell. They said: We seek refuge with Allah from the torment of Hell. He said: Seek refuge with Allah from the torment of the grave. They said: We seek refuge with Allali from the torment of the grave. He said: Seek refuge with Allah from turmoil, its visible and invisible (aspects), and they said: We seek refuge with Allah from turmoil and its visible and invisible aspects and he said: Seek refuge with Allah from the turmoil of the Dajjal, and they said We seek refuge with Allah from the turmoil of the Dajjal.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6860"> Book 040, Number 6860: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: If you were not (to abandon) the burying of the dead (in the grave), I would have certainly supplicated Allah that He should make you listen the torment of the grave.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6861"> Book 040, Number 6861: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Ayyub through some other chains of transmitters (and the words are):" Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went out after the sun had set and he heard some sound and said: It is the Jews who are being tormented in their graves.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6862"> Book 040, Number 6862: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) having said: When the servant is placed in his grave and his companions retrace their steps arid he hears the noise of the footsteps, then two angels come to him and make him sit and say to him: What you have to say about this person (the Holy Prophet)? If he is d believer, lie would say: I bear testimony to the fact that he is a servant of Allali and His Messenger. Then it would be said to him: Look to your seat in the Hell- Fire, for Allah has substituted (the seat of yours) with a seat in Paradise. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He would be shown both the seats. Qatada said: It was mentioned to us that his grave (the grave of a believer) expands to seventy cubits and is full with verdure until the Day when they would be resurrected.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6863"> Book 040, Number 6863: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When the dead body. is placed in the grave, he listens to the sound of the shoes (as his friends and relatives return after burying him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6864"> Book 040, Number 6864: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: When the servant is placed in his grave and his friends retrace their steps. The rest of the liadith is the same as transmitted by Qatada.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6865"> Book 040, Number 6865: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: This verse:" Allah grants steadfastness to those who believe with firm word," was rereaied in connection with the torment of the grave. It would be said to him: Who is your Lord? And he would say: Allah is my Lord and Muhammad is my Apostle (may peace be upon him), and that is (what is implied) by the words of Allah, the Exalted:" Allah keeps steadfast those who believe with firm word in this world and in the Hereafter."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6866"> Book 040, Number 6866: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported that this verse:" Allah keeps steadfast those who believe with firm word in th;s world and the Hereafter," was revealed in con- nection with the torment of the grave.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6867"> Book 040, Number 6867: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported: When the soul of a believer would go out (of his body) it would be received bv two angels who would take it to the sky. Hammad (one of the narrators in the chain of transmitters) mentioned the swetness of its odour, (and further said) that the dwellers of the sky say: Here comes the pious soul from the side of the earth Let there be blessings of Allah upon the body in which it resides. And it is carried (by the angels) to its Lord, the Exalted and Glorious. He would say: Take it to its destined end. And if he is a nonbeliever and as it (the soul) leaves the body-Hammad made a mention of its foul smell and of its being cursed-the dwellers of the sky say: There comes a dirty soul from the side of the earth, and it would be said: Take it to its destined end. Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) put a thin cloth which was with him upon his nose while making a mention (of the foul smell) of the soul of a non-believer.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6868"> Book 040, Number 6868: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported: We were along with Umar between Mecca and Medina that we began to look for the new moon. And I was a man with sharp eye- sight, so I could see it, but none except me saw it. I began to say to 'Umar: Don't you see it? But he would not see it. Thereupon Umar said: I would soon be able to see it (when it will shine more brightly). I lay upon bed. He then made a mention of the people of Badr to us and said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) showed us one day before (the actual battle) the place of death of the people (participating) in (the Battle) of Badr and he was saying: This would be the place of death of so and so tomorrow, if Allah wills. Umar said: By Him Who sent him with truth, they did not miss the places (of their death) which Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had pointed for them. Then they were all thrown in a well one after another. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) then went to them and said: O, so and so, the son of so and so; O so and so, the son of so and so, have you found correct what Allah and His Messenger had promised you? I have, however, found absolutely true what Allah had promised with me. Umar said: Allah's Messenger, how are you talking with the bodies without soul in them. Thereupon he said: You cannot hear more distinctly than (their hearing) of what I say, but with this exception that they have not power to make any reply.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6869"> Book 040, Number 6869: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) let the dead bodies of the unbelievers who fought in Badr (lie unburied) for three days. He then came to them and sat by their side and called them and said: O Abu Jahl b. Hisham, O Umayya b. Khalaf, O Utba b. Rab'ila, O Shaiba b. Rabi'a, have you not found what your Lord had promised with you to be correct? As for me, I have found the promises of my Lord to be (perfectly) correct. Umar listened to the words of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, how do they listen and respond to you? They are dead and their bodies have decayed. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, what I am saying to them, even you cannot hear more distinctly than they, but they lack the power to reply. Then'he commanded that they should be buried in the well of Badr.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6870"> Book 040, Number 6870: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Aba Talha reported: When it was the Day of Badr and Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had gained victory over them (the Meccans), he commanded more than twenty persons, and in another hadith these are counted as twenty-four persons, from the non-believers of the Quraish to be thrown into the well of Badr. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 18: THE RECKONING ON THE DAY OF JUDGMENT IS A FACT </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6871"> Book 040, Number 6871: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who is taken to account on the Day of Resurrection is in fact put to torment. I said: Has Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, not said this: 'He will be made subject to an easy reckoning" (Ixxxiv. 8)? Thereupon he said: (What it implies) is not the actual reckoning, but only the presentation of one's deeds to Him. He who is thoroughly examined in reckoning is put to torment.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6872"> Book 040, Number 6872: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ayyub with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6873"> Book 040, Number 6873: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Everyone who is reckoned thoroughly is undone. I said: Allah's Messenger, has Allah not called (reckoning) as easy reckoning? Thereupon he said.. It implies only presenta- tion of (one's deeds to Him), but if one is thoroughly examined in reckoning, he in fact is undone.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6874"> Book 040, Number 6874: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who is examined thoroughly In reckoning is undone.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 19: IT IS ESSENTIAL TO HOPE GOOD FROM ALLAH </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6875"> Book 040, Number 6875: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying three days before his death: None of you should court death but only hoping good from Allah</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6876"> Book 040, Number 6876: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6877"> Book 040, Number 6877: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say three days before his death: None of you should die but hoping only good from Allah, the Exalted and Glorious.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6878"> Book 040, Number 6878: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying. Every servant would be raised (in the same very state) in which he dies.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6879"> Book 040, Number 6879: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of A'mash but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="040.6880"> Book 040, Number 6880: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Umar reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When Allah intends to chastise a people, He chastises all of them then they would be raised according to their deeds.</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-6956697303319172445?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-20434933707922892742008-03-10T10:13:00.002-07:002008-03-10T10:14:40.830-07:00Book 39: The Book Giving Description of the Day of Judgement, Paradise and Hell (Kitab Sifat Al-Qiyamah wa'l Janna wa'n-Nar)<p><strong> Chapter 1: DESCRIPTION OF THE DAY OF JUDGMENT, PARADISE AND HELL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6698"> Book 039, Number 6698: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A bulky person would be brought on the Day of judgment and he would not carry the weight to the eye of Allah equal even to that of a gnat. Nor shall We set up a balance for them on the Day of Resurrection" (xviii. 105).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6699"> Book 039, Number 6699: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported that a Jew scholar came to Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) and said. Muhammad, or Abu al-Qasim, verify, Allah, the Exalted and Glorious. would carry the Heavens on the Day of Judgment upon one finger and earths upon one finger and the mountains and trees upor one finger and the ocean and moist earth upon one finger-in fact the whole of the creation upon one finger, and then He would stir them and say: I am your Lord, I am your Lord. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) smiled testifying what that scholar had said. He then recited this verse:" And they honour not Allah with the honour due to Him; and the whole earth will be in His grip on the Day of Resurrection and the heaven* r*Utd up in His right hand. Glory be to Him I and highly Exalted is Re above what they associate (with Him)" (xxxix. 67).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6700"> Book 039, Number 6700: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadlth has been narrated on the authority of Mansur with the same chain of truemittm (and the words are): A Jew scholar came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). The rest of the hadith is the same, but there is no mention of" then He would stir them." But there is this addition:" I saw Allah's Messengcr (may peace be upon him) smiling so much that his front teeth appeared and testifying him (th Jew scholar) ; then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) recited the verse:" And they honour not Allah with the honour due to Him" (xxxix. 67).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6701"> Book 039, Number 6701: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah reported that a person from the People of the Book came to Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) and said: Abu al-Qasim, verify, Allah would carry tho Reavmo upon one finger and the earths upon one finger and the trees and moist earth upon one finger and in fact the whole of the creation upon one finger and then say: I am your Lord. I an your Lord. And he (the narrator) further said: I saw Allah's Massenger (may peace be upon him) fooling so much hppy that his front teeth became visible and then he recited the Yeife:" And they honour not Allah with the honour due to Him" (xxxix. 67).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6702"> Book 039, Number 6702: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6703"> Book 039, Number 6703: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allan, the Exalted and Glorious, will take in His grip the earth ou the Day of Judgment and He would roll up the sky in His right hand and would say: I am the Lord; wbere are the sovereigns of the world?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6704"> Book 039, Number 6704: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, would fold the Heavens on the Day of Judgment and then He would place them on His tight hand and say: I am the Lord; where are the haughty and where are the proud (today)? He would fold the' earth (placing it) on the lef t hand and say: I am the Lord; where are the haughty and where are the proud (today)?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6705"> Book 039, Number 6705: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Miqsam reported that he saw Abdullah b. Umar as he narrated Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, would take in His hand His Heavens and His Earth, and would say: I am Allah. And He would clench His fingers and then would open them (and say): I am your Lord. I saw the pulpit in commotion from underneath because of something (vib-ating) there. And (I felt this commotion so much) that I said (to myself): It may not fall with Allah's Massenger (may peace be upon him) upon it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6706"> Book 039, Number 6706: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Miqsam reported that 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: I saw Allah'h Messenger (may peace be upon him) upon the pulpit and he was saying that the Mighty Lord, the Exalted and Glorious would take hold of the Heavens and earth in His hand. The rest of the hadith is the same,</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: THE BEGINNING OF THE CREATION AND THE CREATION OF ADAM (PEACE BE UPON HIM) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6707"> Book 039, Number 6707: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Haraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) took hold of my hands and said: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, created the clay on Saturday and He created the mountains on Sunday and He created the trees on Monday and He created the things entailing labour on Tuesday and created light on Wednesday and lie caused the animals to spread on Thursday and created Adam (peace be upon him) after 'Asr on Friday;the last creation at the last hour of the hours of Friday, i. e. between afternoon and night.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: PERTAINING TO RE-BIRTH, ASSEMBLING AND CHARACTERISTICS OF THE EARTH ON THE DAY OF RESURRECTION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6708"> Book 039, Number 6708: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Sahl b. Sa'd reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The people will be assembled on tee Day of Resurrection on a white plain with a reddish tinge like the loaf of white bread with no marks set up for anyone.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6709"> Book 039, Number 6709: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported: I asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about the words of Allah, the Exalted and Glorious:" The day when the earth would be changed for another earth and Heaven would be changed for another Heaven (XiV. 48), (and inquired: ) (Allah's Messenger), where would the people be on tnat day? He said: They would be on the Sirit.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: THE FEAST FOR THE INHABITANTS OF PARADISE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6710"> Book 039, Number 6710: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu al-Sa'id Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that the earth would turn to be one single bread on the Day of Resurrection and the Almighty would turn it in His hand as one of you turns a loaf while on a journey. It would be a feast arranged in the honour of the people of Paradise. He (the narrator) further narrated that a person from among the Jews came and he said: Abu al-Qasim, may the Compassionate Lord be pleased with you! May I inform you about the feast arranged in honour of the people of Paradise on the Day of Resurrection? He said: Do it, of course. He said: The earth would become one single bread. Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) looked towards us and laughed until his molar teeth became visible. He then again said: May I inform you about that with which they would season it? He said: Do it, of course. He said: Their seasoning would be balim and fish. The Companions of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: What is this balam? He said: Ox and fish from whose excessive livers seventy thousand people would be able to eat.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6711"> Book 039, Number 6711: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If ten scholars of the Jews would follow me, no Jew would be left upon the surface of the earth who would not embrace Islam.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: THE QUESTION OF A JEW FROM ALLAH'S MESSENGER (MAY PEACE BE UPON HIM) ABOUT SOUL AND HIS WORDS." THEY ASK THEE ABOUT THE SOUL" </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6712"> Book 039, Number 6712: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: As I was going aloog with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) in a cultivable land and he (the Holy Prophet) was walking with the support of a wood, a group of Jews happened to meet him. Some of them said to the others: Ask him about the Soul. They said: Wbat is your doubt about it? There is a possibility that you may ask him about anything (the answer of) which you may not like. They said: Ask him. So one amongst them asked him about the Soul. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kept quiet and he gave no reply and I came to know that revelation was being sent to him, so I stood at my place and thus this revelation descended upon him:" They ask thee 'about Soul. Say: The Soul is by the Commandment of my Lord, and of Knowledge you are given but a little" (xvii. 58).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6713"> Book 039, Number 6713: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah reported: I was walking along with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) in a field of Medina. The rest of the hadith is the same, but there is a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6714"> Book 039, Number 6714: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon h@) was reclining against a tree in the garden. The rest of the hadith is the same. but there is a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6715"> Book 039, Number 6715: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Khabbab reported that al-As b. Wa'il owed debt to me. I came to him in order to demand that. He said: I will never repay you unless you belie Mubammad. I said: I would never belie Mubammad until you die and you are again raised up. He said: When I would be raised up after death, I would repay your debt when I would get my property and children back. Waki' said: This is how Almash has narrated and it was on this occasion that this verse was revealed:" Hast thou seen him who dis. believes in Our message and says: I shall certainly be given wealth and children' (xis, 77) up to" he would come to Us alone" (xiX. 80).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6716"> Book 039, Number 6716: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Khabbib through another chain of transmitters and the words are. I in the pre-Islamic days used to work as an iron-smith. I did some work for 'As b. Wa'il and came to him for getting the remuneration of my wages.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: PERTAINING TO THE WORDS OF ALLAIIH: ALLAH WOULD NEVER PUNISH THEM SO LONG AS YOU ARE AMONGST THEM" </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6717"> Book 039, Number 6717: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Abu Jahl said: O Allah, if he is true, then shower upon us the volley of stones from the sky or inflict upon us a grievous torment, and it was on this occasion that this verse was revealed:" 'Allah would never torment them so long as you are amongst them. And Allah is not going to torment them as long as they seek forgiveness. And why is it that Allah should not torment them and they prevent people from coming to the sacred mosque...." (viii. 34) to the end.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: PERTAINING TO THE WORDS OF ALLAH:" NAY, BUT VERILY MAN IS INORDINATE, BECAUSE HE LOOKS UPON HIMSELF AS SELF-SUFFICIENT" </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6718"> Book 039, Number 6718: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Huraira reported that Abu Jahl asked (people) whether Mubammad placed his face (on the ground) in their presence. It was said to him: Yes. He said: By Lit and Uzza. If I were to see him do that, I would trample his neck, or I would beamear his face with dust. He came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as he was engaged in prayer and thought of trampling his neck (and the people say) that he came near him but turned upon his heels and tried to repulse something with his hands. It was said to him: What is the matter with you? He said: There is between me and him a ditch of fire and terror and wings. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) said: If he were to come near me the angels would have torn him to pieces. Then Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse- (the narrator) said: We do not whether it is the hadith transmitted te Abu Huraira or something conveyed to him from another source:" Nay, man is surely inordinate, because he looks upon himself as self-sufficient. Surely to thy Lord is the return. Hast thou seen him who forbids a servant when he prays? Seest thou if he is on the right way, or enjoins observance of piety? Seest thou if he [Abu Jah]] denies and turns away? Knowest he not that Allah sees? Nay. if he desists not, We will seize him by the forelock-a lying, sinful forelock. Then let him summon his council. We will summon the guards of the Hell. Nay! Obey not thou him" (Icvi. 6-19). (Rather prostrate thyself.) Ubaidullah made this addition: It was after this that (prostration) was enjoined upon and Ibn Abd al-Ala made this addition that by Nadia he meant his people.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6719"> Book 039, Number 6719: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Masruq reported: We were sitting in the company of Abdullah and he was lying on the bed that a person came and said: Abd Abd al-Rabmin, a story-teller at the gates of Kinda says that the verse (of the Qur'an) which deals with the" smoke" implies that which is about to come and it would hold the breath of the infidels and would inflict the believers with cold. Thereupon Abdullah got up and said in anger. O people, fear Allah and say only that which one knows amongst you and do not say which he does not know and he should simply say: Allah has the best knowledge for He has the best knowledge amongst all of you. It does not behove him to say that which he does not know. Allah has the best knowledge of it. Verily Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said to His Prophet (may peace be upon him) to state:" I do not ask from you any remuneration and I am not the one to put you in trouble," and when Allah's Mesqenger (may peace be upon him) saw people turning back (from religion) he said: O Allah, afflict thern with seven famines as was done in the case of Yusuf, so they were afflicted with famine by which they were forced to eat everything until they were obliged to eat the hides and the dead bodies because of hunger, and every one of them looked towards the sky and he found a smoke. And Abu Sufyan came and he said: Muhammad, you have come to command us to obey Allah and cement the ties of blood- relation whereas your people are undone; supplicate Allah for tlicm. Thereupon Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said:" Wait for the day when there would be clear smoke from the sky which would envelop people and that would be grievous torivent" up to the words:" you are going to return to (evil)." (if this verse implied the torment of the next life) could the chastisement of the next (life) be averted (as the Qur'an states): On the day when We seize (them) with the most violent seizing; surely We shall exact retribution" (xliv. 16)? The seizing (in the hadith) implies that of the Day of Badr. And so far as the sign of smoke, seizing, inevitability and signs of Rome are concern- ed, they have become things of the past now.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6720"> Book 039, Number 6720: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Masruq reported that there came to Abdullah a person and said: I have left behind in the mosque a man who explains the Qur'an according to his personal discretion and he explained this verse:" So wait for the day when the Heaven brings a clear smoke." He says that a smoke would come to the people on the Day of Resurrection anl it will withhold breath and they would be inflicted with cold. 'Abdullah said: He who has knowledge should say something and he who has no knowledge should simply say: Allah is best aware. This reflects the understanding of a person that he should say about that which he does not know that it is Allah who knows best. The fact is that when the Quraish disobeyed Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) he supplicated Allah that they should be afflicted with famine and starvation as was done in case of Yusuf. And they were so much hard pressed that a person would ace the sky and he would see between him and the sky something like smoke and they were so much hard pressed that they began to cat the bones, and a person came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger. seek forgiveness for the tribe of Mudar for (its people) have been undone. The Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: For Mudar? You are overbold, but he supplicated Allah for them. It was upon this that this verse was revealed:" We shall remove the chastisement a little, but they will surely return to evil" (xliv. 15). lie (the narrator) said: There was a downpoor of rain upon them. When there was some relief for them they returned to the same position as they had been before, and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse:" So wait for the day when the heaven brings a clear smoke enveloping people. This is a grievous torment on the day when We seize them with the most violent seizing; surely, We shall exact retribution." And this (seizing) implied (Battle) of Badr.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6721"> Book 039, Number 6721: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah said that five signs have (become things) of the past (and have proved the truth of the Holy Prophet): (Enveloping) by the smoke, inevitable (punishment to the Meccans at Badr), (the victory of) Rome, (violent) seizing (of the Meccans at Badr) and (the splitting up of) the Moon.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6722"> Book 039, Number 6722: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6723"> Book 039, Number 6723: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ubayy b. Ka'b reported that the words of Allah, the Exalted and Glorious:" We will, surely, make them taste the lesser punishment before the severer punishment (that haply they may return)" (xxxii. 21) imply the torments of the world. (victory of) Rome, seizing (of the Meccans), or smoke. And Shalba was in doubt about seizing or smoke.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: THE SPLITTING UP OF THE MOON (A GREAT MIRACLE) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6724"> Book 039, Number 6724: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Ma'mar reported on the authority of Abdullah that the moon was split up during lifetime by Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in two parts and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Bear testimony to this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6725"> Book 039, Number 6725: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud (who said): We were along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) at Mina, that moon was split up into two. One of its parts was behind the mountain and the other one was on this side of the mountain. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upbn him) said to us: Bear witness to this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6726"> Book 039, Number 6726: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported that the moon was split up in two parts during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). The mountain covered one of its parts and one part of it was above the mountain and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Bear witness to this.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6727"> Book 039, Number 6727: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Shu'ba with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6728"> Book 039, Number 6728: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that the people of Mecca demanded from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he should show them (some) signs (miracles) and he showed tlicin the splitting of the moon. This hadlth has been narrated on the authority of Anas through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6729"> Book 039, Number 6729: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that the moon was split up in two parts and in the hadith recorded in Abu Dawud, the words are:" The moon was split up into two parts during the life of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6730"> Book 039, Number 6730: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Abbas reported that the moon was split up during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 9: THERE IS NONE TO SHOW MORE PATIENCE THAN ALLAH, THE EXALTED AND GLORIOUS, ON ATTRIBUTING WRONG THINGS TO HIM </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6731"> Book 039, Number 6731: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> AbU Musa reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There is none to show more patience at listening to the most irksome things than Allah, the Exalted and Glorious. ' Partnership is associated to Him (polytheism). and (fatherhood) of a child is attributed to HiM, but in spite of this He protects them (people) and provides them sustenance. This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Abu Muas with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6732"> Book 039, Number 6732: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Qais reported from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that none is more forbearing in listening to the most irksome things than Allah, the Exalted. They associate rivals with him, attribute sonhood to Him, but in spite of this He provides them sustenance, grants them safety, confers upon them so many things.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6733"> Book 039, Number 6733: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah, the Exalted and High, would say to one who shall have to undergo the least torture (on the Day of Resurrection): Would you like to go as ransom if you had all worldly riches; he would say: Yes. Allah would say to him: When you were in the loins of Adam, I demadded from you something easier than this that you should not associate anything with Me. (The narrator says): I think He also said: I would not cause you to enter Hell-Fire but you defied and attributed Divinity (to others besides Me).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6734"> Book 039, Number 6734: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik through another chain of transmitters, but with a slight variation of wording (and the words are): I shall cause him to enter Hell." (The words subsequent to these) have not been mentioned.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6735"> Book 039, Number 6735: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be u n him) said: It would be said to the non-believers on the Day of Resurrection: If you were to possess gold, filling the whole earth, would you like to secure your freedom by paying that? He would say: Yes. Thereupon it would be said to him: Something easier (than this) was demanded from you (but you paid no heed to it).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6736"> Book 039, Number 6736: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported this hadlth through another chain of transmitters and the words are:" It would be said to him: You have told a lie; what had been demanded from you was quite easier than this (the belief in the Oneness of Allah)."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 10: THE NON-BELIEVERS WOULD BE MADE TO CRAWL ON THEIR FACES </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6737"> Book 039, Number 6737: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that a person said: Allah's Messenger, how the non-believers would be made to assemble on the Day of Resurrection (by crawling) on their faces? Thereupon he said: Is He Who is powerfnl to make them walk on their feet is not powerful enough to make them (crawl) upon their faces on the Day of Resurrection? Qatada said: Of conrse, it is so. (He adjured): By the might of our Lord.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 11: DIPPING OF THE MOST AFFLUENT PEOPLE OF THE WORLD IN THE HELL-FIRE AND DIPPING OF THE MOST (WORLDLY) MISERABLE IN PARADISE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6738"> Book 039, Number 6738: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that one amongst the denizens of Hell who had led a life of ease and plenty amongst the people of the world would be made to dip in Fire only once on the Day of Resurrection and then it would be said to him: O, son of Adam, did you find any comfort, did you happen to get any material blessing? He would say: By Allah, no, my Lord. And then that person from amongst the persons of the world be brought who had led the most miserable life (in the world) from amongst the inmates of Paradise. and he would be made to dip once in Paradise and it would be said to him. 0, son of Adam, did you face, any hardship? Or had any distress fallen to your lot? And he would say: By Allah, no,0 my Lord, never did I face any hardship or experience any distress.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6739"> Book 039, Number 6739: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Verily, Allah does nut treat a believer unjustly in regard to his virtues. He would confer upon him (His blessing) in this world and would give him reward in the Hereafter. And as regards a non-believer. he would be made to taste the reward (of virtue in this world) what as has done for himself so much that when it would be the Hereafter. he would find no virtue for which he should be rewarded.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6740"> Book 039, Number 6740: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) thus told him: When a non-believer does good he is made to taste Its reward in this world. And so far as the believer is concerned, Allah stores (the reward) of his virtues for the Hereafter and provides him sustenance in accordance with his obedience to Him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6741"> Book 039, Number 6741: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 12: THE SIMILITUDE OF A BELIEVER AND A NON-BELIEVER </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6742"> Book 039, Number 6742: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Similitude of a believer is that of (a standing) crop which the air continues to toss from one side to another; in the same way a believer always (receives the strokes) of misfortune. The similitude of a hypocrite is that of a cypress tree which does not move until it is uprooted.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6743"> Book 039, Number 6743: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This badith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters, but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6744"> Book 039, Number 6744: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ka'b reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that the similitude of a believer is that of a standing crop in a field which is shaken by wind and then it comes to its original position but it stands at its roots. The similitude of a non-believer is that of a cypress tree which stands on its roots and nothing shakes it but it is uprooted (with) one (violent stroke).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6745"> Book 039, Number 6745: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ka'b b. Malik reported on the authority of his father that the similitude of a believer is that of a standing crop. The wind sometimes shakes it and sometimes raises it up and then it comes to its destined end. And the similitude of a hypocrite is that of a cypress tree which is not affected by anything but is uprooted once for all. This badith has been narrated through another chain, of transmitters also.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6746"> Book 039, Number 6746: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Ka'b through another chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 13: THE BELIEVER IS LIKENED TO THE DATE-PALM TREE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6747"> Book 039, Number 6747: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There is a tree amongst trees, the leaves of which do not wither and that is like a Muslim; tell me which that (tree) can be? The people began to think of the trees of the forest. Abdullah said: I thought that it could be the date-palm tree, but I felt hesitant (to say that). They (the Companions) then said: Allah's Messenger, (kindly) tell us which that can be? Thereupon he said: It is the date-palm tree. I made a mention of that to 'Umar, whereupon he said: Had you said that it meant the date-palin tree, this statement of yours (would have been dearer to me) than such and such things.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6748"> Book 039, Number 6748: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) one day said to his Companions: Tell me about a tree which has resemblance with a believer. The people began to mention (different) trees of the forest. Ibn 'Umar said: It was instilled in my mind or in my heart and it stuck therein that it implied the date- palm tree. I made up my mind to make a mention of that but could not do that because of the presence of the elderly people there. When there was a hush amongst them (after they had expressed their views), Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: It Is the date-palm tree.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6749"> Book 039, Number 6749: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mujahid said: (I have had the privilege) of accompanying Ibn 'Umar up to Medina but I did not hear him narrate anything from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) except one hadith. And he said: We were in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that there was brought to him the kernel of a date. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6750"> Book 039, Number 6750: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mujahid reported: I heard Ibn 'Umar as saying: There was brought to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) the kernel. The rest of the hadith is tile same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6751"> Book 039, Number 6751: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported: We were'in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he said: Tell me of a tree which has resemblance to a Muslim and the leaves of which do not wither. Ibrahim said that perhaps Imam Muslim had stated like this: It constantly bears fruit but I have, however, seen [It does not bear fruit constantly]. Ibn Umar said: It crossed my mind that it could be the date-palm tree, but as I saw Aba Bakr and Umar observe silence, I did not deem it fit that I should speak or I should say something. 'Umar said: Had you said so, it would have been dearer to me than such and such thing.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 14: THE MISCHIEF OF SATAN IN THE MUSLIM SOCIETY AND SENDING HIS DETACHMENTS FOR THE CREATION OF TURMOIL, AND THERE IS A DEVIL ATTACHED TO EVERY PERSON </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6752"> Book 039, Number 6752: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Jabir reported: I heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Verily, the Satan has lost all hopes that the worshippers would ever worship (him) in the peninsula of Arabia, but he (is hopeful) that he would sow the seed of dissension amongst them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6753"> Book 039, Number 6753: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6754"> Book 039, Number 6754: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: The throne of Iblis is upon the ocean and he sends detachments (to different parts) inorder to put people to trial and the most important figure in his eyes is one who is most notorious in sowing the seed of dissension.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6755"> Book 039, Number 6755: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Iblis places his throne upon water; he then sends detachments (for creating dissension) ; the nearer to him in tank are those who are most notorious in creating dissension. One of them comes and says: I did so and so. And he says: You have done nothing. Then one amongst them comes and says: I did not spare so and so until I sowed the seed of discord between a husband and a wife. The Satan goes near him and says: 'You have done well. A'mash said: He then embraces him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6756"> Book 039, Number 6756: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upqn him) said: The Satan sends detachments of his own in order to put people to trial and the highest in rank, in his eyes, is one who is most notorious in sowing the seed of dissension.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6757"> Book 039, Number 6757: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: There is none amongst you with whom is not an attache from amongst the jinn (devil). They (the Companions) said: Allah's Messenger, with you too? Thereupon he said: Yes, but Allah helps me against him and so I am safe from his hand and he does not command me but for good.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6758"> Book 039, Number 6758: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mansiir with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6759"> Book 039, Number 6759: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A'isha the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported that one day Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came out of her (apartment) during the night and she felt jealous. Then he came and he saw me (in what agitated state of mind) I was. He said: A'isha, what has happened to you? Do you feel jealous? Thereupon she said: How can it he (that a woman like me) should not feel jealous in regard to a husband like you. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: It was your devil who had come to you, and she said: Allah's Mes- senger, is there along with me a devil? He said: Yes. I said: Is devil attached to everyone? He said: Yes. I (Aisha) again said: Allah's Messenger, is it with you also? He said: Yes, but my Lord has helped me against him and as such I am ab solutely safe from his mischief.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 15: NONE WOULD ATTAIN SALVATION BECAUSE OF HIS DEEDS BUT IT IS THROUGH LORD'S MERCY (THAT HE WOULD ATTIAN THAT) </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6760"> Book 039, Number 6760: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: None amongst you would attain salvation purely because of his deeds. A person said: Allah's Messenger, even you also. Thereupon he said: Yes. Not even I, but that Allah wraps me in Mercy, but you should act with moderation. This badith has been transmitted on the authority of Bukair b. al-Ashajj with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6761"> Book 039, Number 6761: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is none whose deeds alone would entitle him to get into Paradise. It was said to him: And, Allah's Messenger, not even you? Thereupon he said: Not even I, but that my Lord wraps me in Mercy.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6762"> Book 039, Number 6762: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is none amongst you whose deeds alone would attain salvation for him. They (the Companions) said: Allah's Messenger, not even you? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Not even I, but that Allah wraps me in Mercy and He grants me pardon. Ibn 'Aun pointed towards his head with his hand saying: Not even I, but that Allah wraps me in His Forgiveness and Mercy.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6763"> Book 039, Number 6763: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is none whose deeds alone can'secure salvation for him. They said: Allah's Messenger, not even you? Thereupon he said: Not even I, but that, the Mercy of Allah should take hold of me.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6764"> Book 039, Number 6764: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: None amongst you can get. into Paradise by virtue of his deeds alone. They said: Allah's Messenger, not even you? Thereupon he said: Not even I, but that Allah should wrap me in His Grace and Mercy.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6765"> Book 039, Number 6765: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Observe moderation in deeds (and if it is not possible, try to be near moderation) and understand that none amongst you can attain salvation because of his deeds alone. They said: Allah's Messenger, not even you? Thereupon he said: Not even I, but that Allah should wrap me in His Mercy and Grace.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6766"> Book 039, Number 6766: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Jabir through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6767"> Book 039, Number 6767: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of A'mash through two other chains of transmitters. The wording is, however, the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6768"> Book 039, Number 6768: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters with this addition:" Give them glad tidings".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6769"> Book 039, Number 6769: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported: I heard Allah's Apoetle (may peace be upon him) as saying: None of you would get into Paradise because of his good deeds alone, and he would not be rescued from Fire, not even I, but because of the Mercy of Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6770"> Book 039, Number 6770: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A'isha, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to say: Observe moderation (in doing deeds), and if yciu fail to observe it perfectly, try to do as much as you can do (to live up to this ideal of moderation) and be happy for none would be able to get into Paradise because of his deeds alone. They (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Allah's Messenger, not even thou? Thereupon he said: Not even I, but that Allah wraps me in His Mercy, and bear this in mind that the deed loved most by Allah is one which is done constantly even though it is insignificant.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6771"> Book 039, Number 6771: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This badith has been narrated on the authority of Musa b. 'Uqba with the same chain of transmitters and he did not make a mention of:" Be happy".</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 16: THE DOING OF GOOD DEEDS VERY FREQUENTLY AND PUTTING ONE'S BEST EFFORTS IN DEVOTION TO ALLAH </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6772"> Book 039, Number 6772: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Mughira b. Shu'ba reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) worshipped so much that his feet were swollen. It was said to him: (Why do you undergo so much hardship despite the fact that) Allah has pardoned for you your earlier and later sins? Thereupon he said: May I not (prove myself) to be a grateful servant (of Allah)?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6773"> Book 039, Number 6773: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Mughira b. Shu'ba and the words are: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) kept standing in prayer (for such long hours) that his feet were swollen. They (his Companions) said: Verily, Allah has pardoned for thee the earlier and the later of thine sins. Thereupon he said: Should I not prove myself to be a grateful servant (of Allah)?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6774"> Book 039, Number 6774: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A'isha reported that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) occupied himself in prayer, he observed such a (long) qiylm (posture of standing in prayer) that his feet were swollen. A'isha said: Allah's Messenger you do this (in spite of the fact) that your earlier and later sins have been pardoned for you? Thereupon, he said. A'isha should I not prove myself to be a thanksgiving servant (of Allah)?</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 17: MODERATION IN GIVING SERMON </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6775"> Book 039, Number 6775: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Shaqiq reported: We were sitting at the door of Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) waiting for him (to come out and deliver a sermon to us). It was at this time that there happened to pass by us Yazid b. Mu'awiya an-Nakha'i. We said: Inform him ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) of our presence here. He went in and Abdullah b. Mas'ud lost no time in coming out to us and said: I was informed of your presence here but nothing hindered me to come out to you but the fact that I did not like to bore you (by stuffing your minds with sermons) as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did not deliver us sermon on certain days fearing that it might prove to be boring for us.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6776"> Book 039, Number 6776: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah through other chains of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="039.6777"> Book 039, Number 6777: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Shaqiq b. Wi'il reported that 'Abdullah used to give us sermon on every Thursday. A person said: Abu 'Abd al-Rahman, we love your talk and so we yearn (to listen to you) and earnestly desire that you should deliver us lecture every day. Thereupon he said: There is nothing to hinder me in giving you talk (every day) but the fact that you may be bored. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did not deliver sermons on certain days (fearing that we might be bored).</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-2043493370792289274?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-54265469771572483452008-03-10T10:13:00.001-07:002008-03-10T10:13:39.457-07:00Book 38: Pertaining To The Charateristics Of The Hypocrites And Command Concerning Them (Kitab Sifat Al-Munafiqin Wa Ahkamihim)<p><strong> Chapter 1: </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6677"> Book 038, Number 6677: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Zaid b. Arqam reported: We set out on a journey along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in which we faced many hardships. 'Abdullah b. Ubayy said to his friends: Do not give what you have in your possession to those who are with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) until they desert him. Zubair said: That is the reciting of that person who recited as min haulahu (from around him) and the other reciting is man haulahia (who are around him). And in this case when we would return to Medina the honourable would drive out the meaner therefrom (lxiv. 8). I came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and informed him about that and he sent someone to 'Abdullah b. Ubayy and he asked him whether he had said that or not. He took an oath to the fact that he had not done that and told that it was Zaid who had stated a lie to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Zaid said: I was much perturbed because of this until this verse was revealed attesting my truth:" When the hypocrites come" (lxiii. 1). Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) then called them in order to seek forgiveness for them, but they turned away their heads as if they were hooks of wood fixed in the wall (lxiii. 4), and they were in fact apparently good-looking persons.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6678"> Book 038, Number 6678: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came to the grave of 'Abdullah b. Ubayy, brought him out from that, placed him on his knee and put his saliva in his mouth and shrouded him in his own shirt and Allah knows best.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6679"> Book 038, Number 6679: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to the grave of 'Abdullah b. Ubayy as he was placed in that. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6680"> Book 038, Number 6680: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Umar reported that when 'Abdullah b. Ubayy b. Salul died. His son 'Abdullah b. 'Abdullah (b. Ubayy) came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and begged him that he should give him his shirt which he would use as a coffin for his father, he gave him that. He then begged that he should conduct funeral prayer for him. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had hardly got up to observe the prayer for him that 'Umar stood up and caught hold of the garment of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, are you going to conduct prayer for this man, whereas Allah has forbidden you to offer prayer for him? Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah has given me an option as He has said:" You may beg pardon for them or you may not beg pardon for them, and even if you beg pardon for them, seventy times" (ix. 80), and I am going to make an addition to the seventy. He was a hypocrite and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) offered prayer for him and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse:" Do not offer prayer for any one of them at all and do not stand upon their graves for (offering prayer over them)" (ix. 84).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6681"> Book 038, Number 6681: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition:" He then abandoned offering (funeral) prayer for them."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6682"> Book 038, Number 6682: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Mas'ud reported that there gathered near the House three persons amongst whom two were Quraishi and one was a Thaqafi or two were Thaqafis and one was a Quraishi. They lacked understanding but wore more flesh. One of them said: Do you think that Allah hears as we speak? The other one said: He does hear when we speak loudly and He does not hear when we speak in undertones, and still the other one said: If He listens when we speak loudly, He also listens when we speak in undertones. It was on this occasion that this verse was revealed:" You did not conceal yourselves lest your ears, your eyes and your skins would stand witness against you" (xli. 22).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6683"> Book 038, Number 6683: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6684"> Book 038, Number 6684: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Zaid b. Thabit reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) set out for Uhud. Some of those persons who were with them came back. The Companions of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) were divided in two groups. One group said: We would kill them, and the other one said: No, this should not be done, and it was on this occasion that this verse was revealed:" Why should you, then, be two parties in relation to hypocrites?" (iv. 88).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6685"> Book 038, Number 6685: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6686"> Book 038, Number 6686: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported that during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) the hypocrites behaved in this way that when Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) set out for a battle, they kept themselves behind, and they became happy that they had managed to sit in the house contrary to (the act of) Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and when Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) came back, they put forward excuses and took oath and wished that people should laud them for the deeds which they had not done. It was on this occasion that this verse was revealed:" Think not that those who exult in what they have done, and love to be praised for what they have not done-think not them to be safe from the chastisement; and for them is a painful chastisement" (iii. 18).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6687"> Book 038, Number 6687: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Humaid b. 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf reported that Marwan said to Rafi', his chamberlain, that he should go to Ibn 'Abbas and ask him: If every one of us be punished for his being happy upon his deed and for his being praised for what he has not done, nobody would be saved from the torment. Ibn 'Abbas said: What you have to do with this verse? It has been in fact revealed in connection with the people of the Book." Then Ibn Abbas recited this verse:" When Allah took a covenant from those who had been given the Book: You shall explain it to people and shall not conceal this" (iii. 186), and then Ibn 'Abbas recited this verse:" Think not that those who exult in what they have done and love to be praised for what they have not done" (iii. 186). Ibn 'Abbas (further) said: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) asked them about something and then they concealed that and they told him something else and they went out and they thought that they had informed him as lie had asked them and they felt happy of what they had concealed.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6688"> Book 038, Number 6688: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Qais reported: I said to 'Ammar: What is your opinion about that which you have done in case (of your siding with Hadrat 'Ali)? Is it your personal opinion or something you got from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? 'Ammar said: We have got nothing from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) which people at large did not get, but Hudhaifa told me that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had especially told him amongst his Companion, that there would be twelve hypocrites out of whom eight would not get into Paradise, until a camel would be able to pass through the needle hole. The ulcer would be itself sufficient (to kill) eight. So far as four are concerned, I do not remember what Shu'ba said about them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6689"> Book 038, Number 6689: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Qais b. 'Ubad reported: We said to 'Ammar: Was your fighting (on the side of 'Ali in the Battle of Siffin) a matter of your own choice or you got its hints from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) for it, is likely for one to err in one's own discretion or was it because of any covenant that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) got from you? He said: It was not because of any covenant that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) got from us which he did get from other people, and he further said that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said:" In my Ummah." And I think that Hudhaifa reported to me and according to Ghundar (the words are) that he said: In my Ummah, there would be twelve hypocrites and they would not be admitted to Paradise and they would not smell its odour, until the camel would pass through a needle's hole. Dubaila (ulcer) would be enough to (torment them) -a kind of flame of Fire which would appear in their shoulders and it would protrude from their chest.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6690"> Book 038, Number 6690: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Tufail reported that there was a dispute between Hudhaifa and one from the people of Aqaba as it happens amongst people. He said: I adjure you by Allah to tell me as to how many people from Aqaba were. The people said to him (Hudhaifa) to inform him as he had asked. We have been informed that they were fourteen and If you are to be counted amongst them, then they would be fifteen and I state by Allah that twelve amongst them were the enemies of Allah and of His Messenger (may peace be upon him) in this world. The rest of the three put forward this excuse: We did not hear the announcement of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and we were not aware of the intention of the people as he (the Holy Prophet) had been in the hot atmosphere. He (the Holy Prophet) then said: The water is small in quantity (at the next station). So nobody should go ahead of me, but he found people who had gone ahead of him and he cursed them on that day.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6691"> Book 038, Number 6691: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who climbed this hill, the hill of Murar, his sins would be obliterated as were obliterated the sins of Bani Isra'il. So the first to take their horses were the people of Banu Khazraj. Then there was a ceaseless flow of persons and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to them: All of you are those who have been pardoned except the owner of a red camel. We came to him and said to him: You also come on, so that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) may seek forgiveness for you. But he said: By Allah, so far as I am concerned, the finding of something lost is dearer to me than seeking of forgiveness for me by your companion (the Holy Prophet), and he remained busy in finding out his lost thing.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6692"> Book 038, Number 6692: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir b. Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who would climb this hill of Murar. The rest of the hadith is the same but with this variation that it was a desert Arab who was finding out his lost thing.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6693"> Book 038, Number 6693: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported: There was a person amongst us who belonged to the tribe of Bani Najjar and he recited Sura al-Baqarah and Surat Al-i-'Imran and he used to transcribe for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He ran away as a rebel and joined the People of the Book. They gave it much importance and said: He is the person who used to transcribe for Muhammad and they were much pleased with him. Time rolled on that Allah caused his death. They dug the grave and buried him therein, but they found to their surprise that the earth had thrown him out over the surface. They again dug the grave for him and buried him but the earth again threw him out upon the surface. They again dug the grave for him and buried him but the earth again threw him out upon the surface. At last they left him unburied.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6694"> Book 038, Number 6694: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Jabir reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came back from a journey and as he was near Medina, there was such a violent gale that the mountain seemed to be pressed. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: This wind has perhaps been made to blow for the death of a hypocrite, and as he reached Medina a notorious hypocrite from amongst the hypocrites had died.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6695"> Book 038, Number 6695: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Iyas reported on the authority of his father: We went along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to visit a person suffering from fever. When I placed my hand upon him, I said: By Allah, I have never seen, till this day, a person running higher temperature than he. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), turning his face to his companions, said: May I not inform you of a severer temperature than this which these two persons would run on the Day of Resurrection? And they were two hypocrites riding upon the camel turning their back towards (the Muslims).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6696"> Book 038, Number 6696: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The similitude of a hypocrite is that of a sheep which roams aimlessly between two flocks. She goes to one at one time and to the other at another time.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="038.6697"> Book 038, Number 6697: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saying like this but with this change of words:" She sometimes finds a way in one flock and then in another flock."</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-5426546977157248345?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-19889482838980677772008-03-10T10:11:00.002-07:002008-03-10T10:12:45.219-07:00Book 37: The Book Pertaining to Repentance and Exhortation to Repentance (Kitab Al-Tauba)<p><strong> Chapter 1: EXHORTATION FOR REPENTANCE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6610"> Book 037, Number 6610: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said: I live in the thought of My servant and I am with him as he remembers Me. (The Holy Prophet) further said: By Allah, Allah is more pleased wth the repentance of His servant than what one of you would do on finding the lost camel in the waterless desert. When he draws near Me by the span of his hand. I draw near him by the length of a cubit and when he draws near Me by the length of a cubit. I draw near him by the length of a fathom and when he draws near Me walking I draw close to him hurriedly.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6611"> Book 037, Number 6611: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah is more pleased with the repentance of His servant when he turns penitently towards Him than one of you would be on finding the lost camel.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6612"> Book 037, Number 6612: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6613"> Book 037, Number 6613: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Harith b. Suwaid said: I went to see 'Abdullah to inquire about his health as he was sick and he narrated to us a hadith of Allahs Messenger (may peace be upon him). He heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah is more pleased with the repentance of His believing servant than a person who loses his riding beast carrying food and drink. He sleeps (being disappointed of its recovery) and then gets up and goes in search for that, until he is stricken with thirst. then comes back to the place where he had been before and goes to sleep completely exhausted placing his head upon his hands waiting for death. And when he gets up, lot there is before him his riding beast and his provisions of food and drink. Allah is more pleased with the repentance of His servant than the recovery of this riding beast along with the provisions (of food and drink).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6614"> Book 037, Number 6614: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6615"> Book 037, Number 6615: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah is more pleased with the repentance of a believing man. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6616"> Book 037, Number 6616: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Nu'man b. Bashir reported: Allah is more pleased with the repentance of a believing servant than of a person who set out on a journey with a provision of food and drink on the back of his camel. He went on until he came to a waterless desert and he felt like sleeping. So he got down under the shade of a tree and was overcome by sleep and his camel ran away. As he got up he tried to see (the camel) standing upon a mound. but did not find it. He then got upon the other mound, but could not see anything. He then climbed upon the third mound but did not see anything until he came back to the place where he had been previously. And as he was sitting (in utter disappointment) there came to him the camel, till that (camel) placed its nosestring in his hand. Allah is more pleased with the repentance of His servant than the person who found (his lost camel) in this very state. Simak reported that Sha'bi was of the opinion that Nu'min traced it to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Simak, however, did not hear that himself.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6617"> Book 037, Number 6617: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: What is your opinion about the delight of a person whose camel loaded with the provisions of food and drink is lost and that moves about with its nosestring trailing upon the waterless desert in which there is neither food nor drink, and lie wanders about in search of that until he is completely exhausted and then accidentally it happens to pass by the trunk of a tree and its nosestring gets entangled in that and he finds it entangled therein? He (in response to the question of the Holy Prophet) said: Allah's Messenger, he would feel highly delighted. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said. By Allah, Allah is more delighted at the repentance of His servant than that person (as he finds his lost) camel.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6618"> Book 037, Number 6618: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah is more pleased with the repentance of a servant as he turns towards Him for repentance than this that one amongst you is upon the camel in a waterless desert and there is upon (that camel) his provision of food and drink also and it is lost by him, and he having lost all hope (to get tbat) lies down in the shadow and is disappointed about his camel and there he finds that camel standing before him. He takes hold of his nosestring and then out of boundless joy says: 0 Lord, Thou art my servant and I am Thine Lord. He commits this mistake out of extreme delight.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6619"> Book 037, Number 6619: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah is more pleased with the repentance of His servant than if one of you gets up and he finds his camel missing in a waterless desert (and then he accidentally finds it). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: THE OBLITERATION OF SINS WITH THE HELP OF SEEKING FORGIVENESS PROM ALLAH </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6620"> Book 037, Number 6620: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sirma reported that when the time of the death of Abu Ayyub Ansari drew near, he said: I used to conceal from you a thing which I heard from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as sayirig: Had you not committed sins, Allah would have brought into existence a creation that would have committed sin (and Allah) would have forgiven them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6621"> Book 037, Number 6621: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Ayyub Ansari reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If you were not to commit sins, Allah would have swept you out of existence and would have replaced you by another people who have committed sin, and then asked forgiveness from Allah, and He would have granted them pardon.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6622"> Book 037, Number 6622: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, if you were not to commit sin, Allah would sweep you out of existence and He would replace (you by) those people who would commit sin and seek forgiveness from Allah, and He would have pardoned them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: THE EXCELLENCE OF CONSTANT REMEMBRANCE OF ALLAH AND MEDITATION IN THE AFFAIRS OF THE HEREAFTER AND PERMISSION OF ABANDONING IT AT TIMES AND ATTENDING TO THE AFFAIRS OF THE WORLD </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6623"> Book 037, Number 6623: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Hanzala Usayyidi, who was amongst the scribes of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). reported: I met Abu Bakr. He said: Who are you? He (Hanzala) said: Hanzala has turned to be a hypocrite. He (Abu Bakr) said: Hallowed be Allah, what are you saying? Thereupon he said: I say that when we are in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) we ponder over Hell-Fire and Paradise as if we are seeing them with our very eyes and when we are away from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) we attend to our wives, our children, our business; most of these things (pertaining to After-life) slip out of our minds. Abu Bakr said: By Allah, I also experience the same. So I and Abu Bakr went to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said to him: Allah's Messenger, Hanzala has turned to be a hypocrite. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: What has happened to you? I said: Allah's Messenger, when we are in your company, we are reminded of Hell-Fire and Paradise as if we are seeing them with our own eyes, but whenever we go away from you and attend to our wives, children and business, much of these things go out of our minds. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, if your state of mind remains the same as it is in my presence and you are always busy in remembrance (of Allah), the Angels will shake hands with you in your beds and in your paths but, Hanzala, time should be devoted (to the worldly affairs) and time (should be devoted to prayer and meditation). He (the Holy Prophet) said this thrice.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6624"> Book 037, Number 6624: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hanzala reported: We were in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and he delivered to us a sermon and made a mention of Hell-Fire. Then I came to my house and began to laugh with my children and sport with my wife. (Hanzala) further reported: I went out and met Abu Bakr and made a mention of that to him. Thereupon he said: I have done the same as you have mentioned. So we went to see Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) and said to him: Allah's Messenger, Hanzala has turned to he a hypocrite. And he (the Holy Prophet) said Show respite. And then I narrated to him the story, and Abu Bakr said: I have done the same as he has done. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Hanzala, there is a time for worldly affairs and a time for (worship and devotion), and if your state of mind is always the same as it is at the time of remembrance of Allah, the Angels would shake hands with you and would greet you on the path by saying: As-Salamu-Alaikum.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6625"> Book 037, Number 6625: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hanzala Taimi Ufayyidi, the scribe of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), reported: We were in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and he brought to our minds the problems pertaining to Paradise and Hell-Fire. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: THE MERCY OF ALLAH PREDOMINATES HIS WRATH </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6626"> Book 037, Number 6626: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When Allah created the creation as He was upon the Throne, He put down in His Book: Verily, My mercy predominates My wrath.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6627"> Book 037, Number 6627: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said: My mercy excels My wrath.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6628"> Book 037, Number 6628: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When Allah created the creation, He ordained for Himself and this document is with Him: Verily, My mercy predominates Mv wrath.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6629"> Book 037, Number 6629: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah created mercy in one hundred parts and He retained with Him ninety-nine parts, and He has sent down upon the earth one part, and it is because of this one part that there is mutual love among the creation so much so that the animal lifts up its hoof from its younc, one, fearing that it might harm it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6630"> Book 037, Number 6630: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah created one hundred (parts of mercy) and He distributed one amongst His creation and kept this one hundred excepting one with Himself (for the Day of Resurrection).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6631"> Book 037, Number 6631: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There are one hundred (parts of) mercy for Allah and He has sent down out of these one part of mercy upon the jinn and human beings and the insects and it is because of this (one part) that they love one another, show kindness to one another and even the beast treats its young one with affection, and Allah has reserved ninetynine parts of mercy with which He would treat His servants on the Day of Resurrection.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6632"> Book 037, Number 6632: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Salman Farisi reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Verily, there are one hundred (parts of) mercy for Allah, and it is one part of this mercy by virtue of which there is mutual love between the people and ninety-nine reserved for the Day of Resurrection.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6633"> Book 037, Number 6633: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Mu'tamir, reported on the authority of his father.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6634"> Book 037, Number 6634: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Salman reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Verily, Allah created, on the same very day when He created the heavens and the earth, one hundred parts of mercy. Every part of mercy is coextensive with the space between the heavens. and the earth and He out of this mercy endowed one part to the earth and it is because of this that the mother shows affection to her child and even the beasts and birds show kindness to one another and when there would be the Day of Resurrection, Allah would make full (use of Mercy).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6635"> Book 037, Number 6635: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Umar b. Khattab reported that there were brought some prisoners to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) amongst whom there was also a woman, who was searching (for someone) and when she found a child amongst the prisoners, she took hold of it, pressed it against her chest and provided it suck. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Do you think this woman would ever afford to throw her child in the Fire? We said: By Allah, so far as it lies in her power, she would never throw the child in Fire. ' Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah is more kind to His servants than this woman is to her child.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6636"> Book 037, Number 6636: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Ala' reported on the authority of his father who reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If a believer were to know the punishment (in Hell) none would have the audacity to aspire for Paradise (but he would earnestly desire to be rescued from Hell), and if a non-believer were to know what is there with Allah as a mercy. none would have been disappointed in regard to Paradise.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6637"> Book 037, Number 6637: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that a person who had never done any good deed asked the members of his family to burn his dead body when he would die and to scatter half of its ashes over the land and half in the ocean. By Allah, if Allah finds him in His grip, He would torment him with a torment with which He did not afflict anyone amongst the people of the world; and when the person died, it was done to him as he had commanded (his family) to do. Allah commanded the land to collect (the ashes scattered on it) and He commanded the ocean and that collected (ashes) contained in it. Allah questioned him why he had done. that He said: My Lord, it is out of Thine fear that I have done it and Thou art well aware of it, and Allah granted him pardon:.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6638"> Book 037, Number 6638: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that a person committed sin beyond measure and when he was going to die, he left this will: (When I die), bum my dead body and then cast them (the ashes) to the wind and in the ocean. By Allah, if my Lord takes hold of me, He would torment me as He has not tormented anyone else. They did as he had asked them to do. He (the Lord) said to the earth: Return what you have taken. And he was thus restored to his (original form). He (Allah) said to him: What prompted you to do this? He said: My Lord, it was Thine fear or Thine awe, and Allah pardoned him because of this. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that a woman was thrown into Hell-Fire because of a cat whom she had tied and did not provide it with food. nor did she set it free to cat insects of the euth until it died inch by inch. Zuhri said: (These two ahidith) show that a person rhould neither feel confident (of getting into Paradise) because of his deeds, nor should he lose (all hopes) of getting into Paradise.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6639"> Book 037, Number 6639: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that a servant transgressed the litnit in committing sins. The rest of the hadith is the same but there is no mention of the story of the cat in it and in the hadith transmitted on the authority of Ziibaidl (the words are):" Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said to everything which had taken a part of lies ashes to return what it had taken."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6640"> Book 037, Number 6640: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that a person amongst the earlier nations before you was conferred property and children by Allah, He said to his children: 'You must do as I command you to do, otherwise I will make others besides you as my inheritors. As I die, burn my body and blow my ashes in the wind as I do not find any merit of mine which would please Allah, and if Allah were to take hold of me, He would punish me. He took a pledge from them and they did as he commanded thein to do. Allah said: What prompted you to do this? He said: My Lord. Thine fear, and Allah did not punish him at all.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6641"> Book 037, Number 6641: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording and Qatada explained the word" lam yasiru" as:" I find no good in store for rxie in the eye of Allah."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: REPENTANCE IS ACCEPTED SO LONG AS ONE REPENTS AFTER COMMITTING SINS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6642"> Book 037, Number 6642: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that his Lord, the Exalted and Glorious, thus said. A servant committed a sin and he said: O Allah, forgive me my sins, and Allah (the Exalted and Glorious) said: My servant commited a sin and then he came to realise that he has a Lord Who forgives the sins and takes to account (the sinner) for the sin. He then again committed a sin and said: My Lord, forgive me my sin, and Allah, the Exalted and High, said: My servant committed a sin and then came to realise that he has a Lord Who would forgive his sin or would take (him) to account for the sin. He again committed a sin and said: My Lord, forgive me for my sin, and Allah (the Exalted and High) said: My servant sas committed a sin and then came to realise that he has a Lord Who forgives the sins or takes (him) to account for sin. 0 servant, do what you like. I have granted you forgiveness.</p> <p> 'Abd al-A'la said: I do not know whether he said thrice or four times to do" what you desire". The hadlth has been narrated on the authority of 'Abd al-A'la b. Hammad with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6643"> Book 037, Number 6643: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported lie heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that a servant committed a sin. The rest of the hadith is the same, but there is a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6644"> Book 037, Number 6644: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Mu'sa reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, Stretches out His Hand during the night so that the people repent for the fault committed from dawn till dusk and He stretches out His Hand daring the day so that the people may reprint for the fault committed from dusk to dawn. (He would accept repentance) before the sun rises in the west (before the Day of Resurrection). A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: ALLAH'S SENSE OF HONOUR, AND HIS PROHIBITION OF THE ABOMINABLE ACTS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6645"> Book 037, Number 6645: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Nothing is more loveable to Allah than His praise as He has praised Himself and no one is more self-respecting than Allah Himself and it As because of this that He has prohibited abominable acts.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6646"> Book 037, Number 6646: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: None is more self-respectidg than Allah and it is because of this that He has prohibited abominable acts-both visible and invisible-and none loves His praise more than Allah Himself.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6647"> Book 037, Number 6647: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported it directly from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he said: None is more self-respecting than Allah and it is because of this that He has prohibited abominable acts-both visible and invisible and nothing is loved by Allah more than the praise of His Ownself and it is because of this that He has praised Himself.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6648"> Book 037, Number 6648: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: None loves one's own praise more than Allah, the Exalted and Glurious, does. It is because of this that He has praised Himself, and none is more self-respecting than Allah and it is because of this that He has prohibited abominable acts and there is none who is more anxious to accept the apologies of the people than Allah Himself and it is because of this that He has revealed the Book and sent the Messengers.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6649"> Book 037, Number 6649: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah is self-respecting and a believer is also self-respecting and the respect of Allah is injured if a believer does what He has forbidden him to do.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6650"> Book 037, Number 6650: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Asma' daughter of Abu Bakr, through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6651"> Book 037, Number 6651: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Salama reported from Abu Huraira that he narrated that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon hin) said: There is none more self-respecting than Allah, the Exalted and Glorious There is no mention of the narration of Asma'.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6652"> Book 037, Number 6652: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Asma' reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: There is none more self-respecting than Allah, the Exalted and Glorious.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6653"> Book 037, Number 6653: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him ) as saying: A believer is self-respecting and Allah is extremely self-respecting.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6654"> Book 037, Number 6654: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: THE WORDS OF ALLAH" THE GOOD DEEDS TAKE AWAY THE EVIL DEEDS" </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6655"> Book 037, Number 6655: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported that a person kissed a woman and he came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and made a mention of that to him. It was (on this occasion) that this verse was revealed:" And observe prayer at the (two) ends of the day and in the first hours of the night. Surely, good deeds take away evil deeds. That is a reminder for the mindful" (xi. 115). That person said: Allah's Messenger, does it concern me only? He (the Holy Prophet) said: It concerns every one of my Unimah, who acts according to it.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6656"> Book 037, Number 6656: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Mas'ud reported that a person came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and told him that he had kissed a woman or touched her with his hand or did something like this. He inquired of him about its expiation. It was (on this occasion) that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse (as mentioned above).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6657"> Book 037, Number 6657: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sulaiman Taimi with the same chain of transmitters that a person had taken liberty with a woman less than fomication. He came to 'Umar b. Khattab and he took it to be a serious offence. Then he came to Abu Bakr and he also took it to be a serious offence. Then he came the Allahs Apostle (may peace be upon him) and he made a mention of this to him. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6658"> Book 037, Number 6658: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah reported that a person came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, I sported with a woman in the outskirts of Medina, and I have committed an offence short of fornication. Here I am (before you), kindly deliver verdict about me which you deem fit. Unar said: Allah concealed your fault. You had better conceal it yourself also. Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), however, gave no reply to him. The man stood up and went away and Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) sent a person after him to call him and be recited this verse:" And observe prayer at the ends of the day and in the first hours of the night. Surely, good deeds take away evil deeds. That is a reminder for the mindful" (xi. 115). A person amongst the people said: Allah's Apostle, does it concern this marn only? Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: No, but the people at large.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6659"> Book 037, Number 6659: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted by Abu al-Ahwas and in this (these words are) also found: Mu'adh said: Allah's Messenger, does it concern this particular case or to all of us? And he (the Holy Prophet) said: Of course, to all of you.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6660"> Book 037, Number 6660: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that a person came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Allah's Messenger, I have committed an offence which deserves imposition of haad, so impose it upon me according to the Book of Allah. Thereupon he said: Were you not present with us at the time of prayer? He said: Yes. Thereupon he said: You have been granted pardon.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6661"> Book 037, Number 6661: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Umama reported: We were sitting in the mosque in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). A person came there and said: Allah's Messenger, I have committed an offence which deserves the imposition of hadd upon me, so impose it upon me. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kept silent. He repeated it and said: Allah's Messenger, I have committed an offence which deserves the imposition of hadd upon me, so impose it upon me. He (the Holy Prophet) kept silent, and it was at this time that Iqama was pronounced for prayer (and the prayer was observed). And when Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had concluded the payer that person followed Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Abu Umama said: I too followed Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) after he had concluded the prayer, so that I should know what answer he would give to that person. That person remained attached to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, I have committed an offence which deserves imposition of hadd upon me, so impose it upon me. Abu Umama reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: Didn't you see that as you got out of the house, you performed ablution perfectly well. He said: Allah's Messenger, of course. I did it. He again said to him: Then you observed prayer along with us. He said: Allah's Messenger, yes, it is so. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: Verily, Allah has exempted you from the imposition of hadd, or he said. From your sin.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6662"> Book 037, Number 6662: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There was a person before you who had killed ninety-nine persons and then made an inquiry about the learned persons of the world (who could show him the way to salvation). He was directed to a monk. He came to him and told him that he had killed ninety-nine persons and asked him whether there was any scope for his repentance to be accepted. He said: No. He killed him also and thus completed one hundred. He then asked about the learned persons of the earth and he was directed to a scholar, and he told him that he had killed one hundred persons and asked him whether there was any scope for his repentance to be accepted. He said: Yes; what stands between you and the repentance? You better go to such and such land; there are people devoted to prayer and worship and you also worship along with them and do not come to the land of yours since it was an evil land (for you). So he went away and he had hardly covered half the distance when death came to him and there was a dispute between the angels of mercy and the angels of punishment. The angels of mercy said: This man has come as a penitant and remorseful to Allah and the angels of punishment said: He has done no good at all. Then there came another angel in the form of a human being in order to decide between them. He said: You measure the land to which he has drawn near. They measured it and found him nearer to the land where he intended to go (the land of piety), and so the angels of mercy took possession of it. Qatada said that Hasan told him that it was said to them that as death approached him, he crawled upon his chest (and managed) to slip in the land of mercy.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6663"> Book 037, Number 6663: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that a man killed ninety-nine persons and then he began to make an inquiry whether there was any way left for him for repentance. He came to a monk and asked him about that, and he said: There is no chance for repentance for you. He killed the monk also and then began to make an inquiry and moved from one village to another village where there lived pious persons, and as he had covered some distance, he was overtaken by death, but he managed to crawl upon his chest (to the side nearer to the place where the pious men lived). He died and then there was a dispute between the angels of mercy and the angels of punishment and (when it was measured) he was found to be nearer to the village where pious persons were living equal to the Space of a span and he was thus included among them.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6664"> Book 037, Number 6664: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Qatida with the same chain of transmitters but (with this variation of wording):" Allah commanded the earth (from where) he wanted to come out to move itself away and to the other earth (where he wanted to go) to draw nearer."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: THROWING OF NON-BELIEVERS IN HELL-FIRE FOR BELIEVERS AS DIVINE GRACE AND MERCY </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6665"> Book 037, Number 6665: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Musa' reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When it will be the Day of Resurrection Allah would deliver to every Muslim a Jew or a Christian and say: That is your rescue from Hell-Fire.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6666"> Book 037, Number 6666: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Burda reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: No Muslim would die but Allah would admit in his stead a Jew or a Christian in Hell-Fire. 'Umar b. Abd al-'Aziz took an oath: By One besides Whom there is no god but He, thrice that his father had narrated that to him from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6667"> Book 037, Number 6667: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of 'Aun b. Utba.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6668"> Book 037, Number 6668: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Burda reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would come people amongst the Muslims on the Day of Resurrection with as heavy sins as a mountain, and Allah would forgive them and He would place in their stead the Jews and the Christians. (As far as I think), Abu Raub said: I do not know as to who is in doubt. Abu Burda said: I narrated it to 'Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz, whereupon he said: Was it your father who narrated it to you from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him)? I said: Yes.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6669"> Book 037, Number 6669: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Safwan b. Muhriz reported that a person said to Ibn 'Umar: How did you hear Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying something about intimate conversation? He said: I heard him say: A believer will be brought to his Lord, the Exalted and Glorious, on the Day of Resurrection and He would place upon him His veil (of Light) and make him confess his faults and say: Do you recognise (your faults)? He would say: My Lord, I do recognise (them). He (the Lord) would say: I concealed them for you in the world. And today I forgive them. And he would then be given the Book containing (the account of his) good deeds. And so far as the non-believers and hypocrites are concerned, there would be general announcement about them before all creation telling them that these (people, i. e. non-believers and hypocrites) told a lie about Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 9: PERTAINING TO THE REPENTANCE OF KA'B B. MALIK AND HIS COMPANIONS </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6670"> Book 037, Number 6670: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Shihab reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) made an expedition to Tabuk and he (the Holy Prophet) had in his mind (the idea of threatening the) Christians of Arabia in Syria and those of Rome. Ibn Shihab (further) reported that 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Abdullah b. Ka'b informed him that Abdullah b. Ka'b who served as the guide of Ka'b b. 'Malik as he became blind that he heard Ka'b b. Malik narrate the story of his remaining behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) from the Battle of Tabuk. Ka'b b. Malik said: I never remained behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) from any expedition which he undertook except the Battle of Tabuk and that of the Battle of Badr. So far as the Battle of Badr is concerned, nobody was blamed for remaining behind as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and the Muslims (did not set out for attack but for waylaying) the caravan of the Quraish, but it was Allah Who made them confront their enemies without their intention (to do so). I had the honour to be with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the night of 'Aqaba when we pledged our allegiance to Islam and it was more dear to me than my participation in the Battle of Badr, although Badr was more popular amongst people as compared with that (Tabuk). And this is my story of remaining back from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the occasion of the Battle of Tabuk. Never did I possess means enough and (my circumstances) more favourable than at the occasion of this expedition. And, by Allah, I had never before this expedition simultaneously in my possession two rides. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) set out for this expedition in extremely hot season; the journey was long and the land (which he and his army had to cover) was waterless and he had to confront a large army, so he informed the Muslims about the actual situation (they had to face), so that they should adequately equip themselves for this expedition, and he also told them the destination where he intended to go. And the Muslims who accompanied Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) at that time were large in numbers but there was no proper record of them. Ka'b (further) said: Few were the persons who wanted to absent themselves, and were under the impression that they could easily conceal themselves (and thus remain undetected) until revelations from Allah, the Exalted and Glorious (descended in connection with them).</p> <p> And Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) set out on an expedition when the fruits were ripe and their shadows had been lengthened. I had weakness for them and it was during this season that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) made preparations and the Muslims too along with them. I also set out in the morning so that I should make preparations along with them but I came back and did nothing and said to myself: I have means enough (to make preparations) as soon as I like. And I went on doing this (postponing my preparations) until people were about to depart and it was in the morning that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) set out and the Muslims too along with him, but I made no preparations. I went early in the morning and came back, but I made no decision. I continued to do so until they (the Muslims) hastened and covered a good deal of distance. I also made up my mind to march on and to meet them. Would that I had done that but perhaps it was not destined for me. After the departure of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as I went out amongst people, I was shocked to find that I did not find anyone like me but people who were labelled as hypocrites or the people whom Allah granted exemption because of their incapacity and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) took no notice of me until he had reached Tabuk. (One day as he was sitting amongst the people in Tabuk) he said: What has happened to Ka'b b. Malik? A person from Banu' Salama said: Allah's Messenger, the (beauty) of his cloak and his appreciation of his sides have allured him and he was thus detained. Mua'dh b. Jabal said: Woe be upon that what you contend. Allah's Messenger, by Allah, we know nothing about him but good. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), however, kept quiet. It was during that time that he (the Holy Prophet) saw a person (dressed in all white (garment) shattering the illusion of eye (mirage).</p> <p> Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: May he be Abu Khaithama and, lo, it was Abu Khaithama al-Ansari and he was that person who contributed a sa' of dates and was scoffed at by the hypocrites. Ka'b b. Malik farther said: When this news reached me that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was on his way back from Tabuk I was greatly perturbed. I thought of fabricating false stories and asked myself how I would save myself from his anger on the following day. In this connection, I sought the help of every prudent man from amongst the members of my family and when it was said to me that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was about to arrive, all the false ideas banished (from my mind) and I came to the conclusion that nothing could save me but the telling of truth, so I decided to speak the truth and it was in the morning that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) arrived (in Medina). And it was his habit that as he came back from a journey he first went to the mosque and observed two Rak'ahs of nafl prayer (as a mark of gratitude) and then sat amongst people. And as he did that, those who had remained behind him began to put forward their excuses and take an oath before him and they were more than eighty persons. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) accepted their excuses on the very face of them and accepted their allegiance and sought forgiveness for them and left their secret (intentions) to Allah, until I presented myself to him. I greeted him and he smiled and there was a tinge of anger in that. He (the Holy Prophet) then said to me: Come forward. I went forward until I sat in front of him. He said to me: What kept you back? Could you not afford to go in for a ride? I said: Allah's Messenger, by Allah, if I were to sit in the presence of anybody else from amongst the worldly people I would have definitely saved myself from his anger on one pretext (or the other) and I have also the knack to fall into argumentation, but, by Allah, I am fully aware of the fact that if I were to put forward before you a false excuse to please you Allah would definitely provoke your wrath upon me, and if I speak the truth you may be annoyed with me, but I hope that Allah would make its end well and, by Allah, there is no valid excuse for me. By Allah, I never possessed so good means, and I never had such favourable conditions for me as I had when I stayed behind you (failed to join the expedition).</p> <p> Thereupon, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: This man told the truth, so get up until Allah gives a decision in your case. I stood up and some people of Banu' Salama followed me in hot haste, and they said to me: By Allah, we do not know about you that you committed a sin prior to this. You, however, showed inability to put forward an excuse before Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as those who stayed behind him have put forward excuses. It would have been enough for the forgiveness of your sin that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) would have sought forgiveness for you. By Allah, they continued to incite me until I thought of going back to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and contradict myself. Then I said to them: Has anyone else also met the same fate? They said: Yes, two persons have met the same fate as has fallen to you and they have made the sane statement as you have made, and the same verdict has been delivered in their case as it has been delivered in your case. I said: Who are they? They said: Murara b. ar-Rabi'a 'Amiri and Hilal b. Umayya al-Waqafi. They made a mention of these two pious persons to me who had participated in the Battle of Badr and there was an example for me in them. I went away when they named these two persons. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade the Nluslims to talk with three of us from amongst those (persons) who had stayed behind him. The people began to avoid us and their attitude towards us underwent a change and it seemed as if the whole atmosphere had turned (hostile) against us and it was in fact the same atmosphere ot which I was fully aware and in which I had lived (for a fairly long time). We spent fifty nights in this very state and my two friends confined themselves withen their houses and spent (most of the) time in weeping, but as I was young and strong amongst them I got (out of my house), participated in congregational prayers, moved about in the bazar; but none spoke to me. I came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as he sat amongst (people) after the prayer, greeted him and asked myself whether his lips stirred in response to my greetings (or not).</p> <p> Then I observed prayer beside him and looked at him with stealing glances and when I attended to my prayer, he looked at me and when I cast a glance at him he turned away his eyes from me. And when the harsh treatment of the Muslims towards me extended to a (considerable) length of time, I walked until I climbed upon the wall of the garden of Abu Qatada, and he was my cousin, and I had the greatest love for him. I greeted him but, by Allah, he did not respond to my greetings. I said to him: Abu Qatada, I adjure you by Allah, arn't you well aware of the fact that I love Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him) the most. He kept quiet. I again repeated saying: I adjure you by Allah. arn't you well aware of the fact that I love Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him) the most. He kept quiet. I again adjured him, whereupon he said: Allah and the Messenger (may peace be upon him) are best aware of it. My eyes began to shed tears and I came back climbing down from the wall and as I was walking in the bazar of Medina a Nabatean from amongst the Nabateans of Syria, who had come to sell foodgrains in Medina, asked people to direct him to Ka'b b. Malik. People gave him the indication by pointing towards me. He came to me and delivered to me a letter of the King of Ghassan and as I was a scribe I read that letter and it was written like this:" Coming to my point, it has been conveyed to us that your friend (the Holy Prophet) is subjecting you to cruelty and Allah has not created you for a place where you are to be degraded and where you cannot find your right place, so you come to us that we should accord you honour. As I read that letter I said: This is also a calamity, so I burnt it in the oven. When out of the fifty days, forty days had passed and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) received no revelation, there came the messenger of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to me and said: Verily, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has commanded you to remain separate from your wife. I said: Should I divorce her or what (else) should I do? He said: No, but only remain separate from her and don't have sexual contact with her.</p> <p> The same message was sent to my companions. So I said to my wife: You better go to your parents and stay there with them until Allah gives the decision in my case. The wife of Hilal b. Umayya came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, Hilal b. Umayya is a senile person, he has no servant. Do you disapprove of my serving him? He said: No, but don't go near him. She said: By Allah, he has no such instinct in him. By Allah, he spends his time in weeping from that day to this day. Some of the members of my family said to me: Were you to seek permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in regard to your wife as he has granted permission to the wife of Hilal b. Umayya to serve him. I said: I would not seek permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), for I cannot say what Allah's Apostle may say in response to seeking my permission. Moreover, I am a young man. It was in this state that I spent ten more nights and thus fifty nights had passed that (people) had observed boycott with us. It was on the morning of the fiftieth night that I observed my dawn prayer and was sitting on one of the roofs of our houses. And I was in fact sitting in that very state which Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, has described about us in these words:" Life had become hard for myself and the earth had compressed despite its vastness," that I heard the noise of an announcer from the peak of the hill of Sal' saying at the top of his voice: Ka'b b. Malik, there is glad tidings for you. I fell down in prostration and came to realise that there was (a message of) relief for me. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had informed the people of the acceptance of our repentance by Allah as he offered the dawn prayer. So the people went on to give us glad tidings and some of them went to my friends in order to give them the glad tidings and a person galloped his horse and came from the tribe of Aslam and his horse reached me more quickly than his voice. And when he came to me whose sound I heard, he gave me the glad tidings. I took off my clothes and clothed him with them because of his bringing good news to me and, by Allah, I possessed nothing else (in the form of clothes) than these two on that occasion, and I asked one to lend me two clothes and dressed myself in them.</p> <p> I came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and on my way I met groups of people who greeted me because of (the acceptance of) repentance and they said: Here is a greeting for you for your repentance being accepted by Allah. (I moved on) until I came to the mosque and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had been sitting there amongst persons. So Talha b. 'Ubaidullah got up and rushed towards me and he shook hands with me and greeted me and, by Allah, no person stood up (to greet me) from amongst the emigrants except he. Ka'b said that he never forgot (this good gesture of) Talha. Ka'b further said: I greeted Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) with Assalam-o-'Alaikam and his face was glistening because of delight, and he said: Let there be glad tidings and blessings for you, the like of which (you have neither found nor you will find, as you find today) since your mother gave your birth. I said: Allah's Messenger. is this acceptance of repentance from you or from Allah? He said: No, (it is not from ma), it is from Allah, and it was common with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that as he was happy his face brightened up and it looked like a part of the moon and it was from this that we recognised it (his delight). As I sat before him, I said: Allah's Messenger, am I allowed to give in charity my wealth for Allah's sake and for the sake of His Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Keep some property with you as it is better for you. I said: I shall keep with me that part (of my property) which fell to my lot (on the occasion of the expedition of) Khaibar. I said: Allah's Messenger, verily, Allah has granted me salvation because of truth and, therefore, (I think) that repentance implies that I should not speak anything but truth as long as I live. He said: By Allah, I do not know whether anyone amongst the Muslims was put to more severe trial than I by Allah because of telling the truth. And since I made a mention of this to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) up to this day I have not told any lie and, by Allah, I have decided not to tell a lie and I hope that Allah would save me (from trials) for the rest of my life and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed these verses:"</p> <p> Certainly, Allah has turned in Mercy to the Prophet and the emigrants and the helpers who followed him in the hour of hardship after the hearts of a part of them were about to deviate; then He turned to them in mercy. Surely, to them He is Compassionate, Merciful and (He turned in Mercy) to the three who were left behind until the earth despite its vastness became strait for them and their souls were also straitened to them." And this revelation reached up to the (words):" O you who believe, develop God consciousness, and be with the truthful" (ix. 117-118). Ka'b said: By Allah, since Allah directed me to Islam there has been no blessing more significant for me than this truth of mine which I spoke to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and if I were to tell a lie I would have been ruined as were ruined those who told lies, for in regard to those who told lies Allah used harshest words used for anyone as He descended revelation (and the words of Allah are):" They will swear by Allah to you when you return to them so that you may leave them alone. So leave them alone. Surely, they are unclean and their resort is Hell, recompense for what they earned. They will swear to you that you may be pleased with them but if you are pleased with them, yet surely Allah is not pleased with the transgressing people" (ix. 95-96). K'ab said that the matter of us three persons was deferred as compared with those who took an oath in the presence of Allahs Messenger (may peace be upon him) and he accepted their allegiance and sought forgiveness for them and Allah did not give any decision in regard to us. It was Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, Who gave decisions in our case, three who remained behind. (The words of the Qur'an)" the three who were left behind" do not mean that we remained back from Jihad but these imply that He kept our matter behind them who took oath and presented excuse before Him. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6671"> Book 037, Number 6671: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. K'ab, who was his (Ka'b's) guide as he became blind, reported that he heard from Ka'b b. Malik the story of his staying behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) from the expedition of Tabuk. The rest of the hadith is the same (but with this variation) that in the narration transmitted on the authority of Yunus (the words are): When Allah's Messenger (may. peace be upon him) intended to set on an expedition he kept It as a secret, but. be did not do so in thic. expedition. And in the narration transmitted on the authority of Muhammad b. Abdullah b. Muslim, there is no mention of Abu Khaithana (Allah be pleased with him) and no mention of his meeting with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6672"> Book 037, Number 6672: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> It is reported on the authority of Abdullah b. K'ab and he was the guide of Ka'b as he lost his eyesight and he was the greatest scholar amongst his people and he retained in his mind many ahadith of the Companions of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He said: I heard my father Ka'b b. Malik, and he fas one of those three whose repentance was accepted (by Allah). He transmitted that He never lagged behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) from any expedition that he undertook except two expeditions; the rest of the hadith is the same, and in the tradition narrated through another chain of transmitters the words are:" That Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) set out on an expedition with a large number of persons more than ten thousand and this could not be recorded in the census register."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 10: HADITH PERTAINING TO THE LIE ABOUT (HADRAT) 'A'ISHA SIDDIQA (ALLAH BE PLEASED WITH HER) AND ACCEPTING OF REPENTANCE OF THOSE WHO BROUGHT FALSE ALLEGATION ABOUT HER </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6673"> Book 037, Number 6673: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Sa'id b. Musayyib, 'Urwa b. Zubair, 'Alqama b. Waqqas and 'Ubaidullah b. Abdullah b. 'Utba b. Mas'ud--all of them reported the story of the false allegation against 'A'isha, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). And they (the slanderers) said what they had to say, but Allah exonerated her of this charge and all of them reported a part of the hadith and some of them who had better memories reported more and with better retention, and I tried to retain this hadith (listening) from every one of them that they reported to me and some of them attested the other. (The sumaried substance of the false allegation is this): 'A'isha said: Whenever Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) intended to set out on a journey he cast lots amongst his wives and he took one with him in whose favour the lot was cast. It so happened that he cast lots amongst us while setting out on a battle and it was cast in my favour, so I set out along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). This relates to the period when the revelation concerning the commands of veil had been made. I was carried in a haudaj and I was brought down where we had to stay. In short, when we set out for return journey from the expedition and our caravan was near Medina, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded one night to march forward. I also got up when the command for the march was given and moved on until I went out of the encampments of the army and after relieving myself I came to my place. I touched my chest and found that my necklace which had been made of the stones of zafar had been broken. I retraced my steps and tried to search my necklace and this detained me there. The group of people who saddled my ride and placed my haudaj carrying me upon the camels marched on. They were under the impression that I was in it. The women in those days were light of weight and they did not wear much flesh, as they ate less food; so they did not perceive the weight of my haudaj as they placed it upon the camel as I was a young girl at that time. So they drove the camel and Eet out and I found my necklace after the army had marched. I came to my place and there was none to call and none to respond (the call).</p> <p> I waited at my place under the impression that when the people would riot find me they would come back. So I kept sitting at my place. I was overpowered by sleep and slept. Safwan b. Mu'attal Sulami Dhakwini, who had lagged behind the army because of taking rest came to my place walking in the latter part of the night and he saw the body of a person who was asleep. He came to me and recognised me as he had seen rue before it was enjoined to observe purda. I got ap by his voice as he recited Inna lillahi wa inna ilaihi raji'un [we are for Allah and to Him we have to return. ] and I covered my head with my headdress. By Allah, he did not speak to me a word and I did not hear a word from him except Inna lillahi. He made his camel kneel down and I amounted the camel as he pressed tLe camel's foreleg and he moved on leaning the camel by the nose string on which I was riding until we came to the army where it had encamped for rest because of extreme heat. Woe be upon those who harboured doubts about me and the most notorious among them was 'Abdullah b. Ubayy, the great hypocrite. We came to Medina and I fell sick for a month. The people had been deliberating over the statements of those who had brought these calumnies against me. I was absolutely unaware of anything concerning that. This, however, caused doubt in my mind that I did not see Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him.) treating me with such kindness with which he treated me as I fell ill before this. The Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) would coome and greet me with Assalam-o-'Alaikum and only ask me how I was. This caused doubt in my mind, but I was unaware of the evil. I wept outside despite my failing health and there went along with me Umm Mistah and she said the daughter of Abu Rhm b. Muttalib b. 'Abd Manaf and his mother was the daughter of Sakhr b. 'Amir, the sister of the mother of Abu Bakr Sidiq and his son was Mistah b. Uthatha b. 'Abbad b. Muttalib. I and the daughter of Abu Rahm set towards the direction of my house. Something got into the head dress of Umm Mistah and she said: Woe be upon Mistah. And I said. Woe be upon what you say. Do you curse people who had participated in Badr? She said: Innocent woman, have you not heard what he said? I said: What did he say? She conveyed to me the statement of those who had brought false allegations against me. So my illness was aggravated.</p> <p> I went to my house and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to me and he greeted me and then said: How is that woman? I said: Do you permit me to go to the (house) of my parents? She (further) said: I had at that time made up my mind to confirm this news from them. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permitted me. So I came to (the house of) my parents and said to my mother: Mother, do you know what the people are talking about? She said: My daughter, you should not worry. By Allah, if there is a handsome woman who is loved by her husband and he has co-wives also they talk many a thing about her. I said: Hallowed be Allah, what are the people talking about? I wept during the whole night until it was morning and I did not have a wink of sleep and I wept even in the morning. As the revelation was delayed (in regard to this matter), so Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) called 'Ali ibn Abi 'Talib and Usama b. Zaid in order to seek their advice in regard to the separation of his wife. Usama b. Zaid told Allah's Messenger (may peace be apen him) about the innocence of his wives and what he knew about his love for them. He said: Allah's Messenger, they are your wives and we know nothing else about thembut goodness. And as for 'Ali b. Abu Talib, he said: Allah has not put any unnecessary burden upon you (in regard to your wives). There are a number of women besides her and if you ask that maidservant (Barira) she will tell you the truth. So, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) called Bailra and said: Barira, did you see anything in 'A'isha which can cause doubt about her? Barira said: By Him Who sent thee with the truth, I have seen nothing objectionable in her but only this much that she is a young girl and she goes to sleep while kneading the flour and the lamb eats that. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) mounted the pulpit and sought vindication against 'Abdullah b. Ubayy b. Salul, and he further said: Who would exonerate me from imputations of that person who has troubled (me) in regard to my family? By Allah, I find nothing in my wife but goodness and the person whom the people have mentioned in this connection is, according to my knowledge, a thoroughly pious person, and he did never get into my house but along with me. Sa'd b. Mu'adh stood up and said: Allah's Messenger, I defend your honour against him. If he belong to the tribe of Aus we would strike his neck and if he belongs to the tribe of our brother Khazraj and you order us we would comply with your order.</p> <p> Then Sa'd b. 'Ubada stood up. He was chief of the Khazraj tribe. He was otherwise a pioas man but he had some what tribal partisanship in him and he said to Sa'd b. Mu'adh: By the everlasting existence of Allah. you are not stating the fact, you will not be able to kill him and you will not have the power to do so. Thereupon, Usaid b. Hudair stood up, and he was the first cousin of Sa'd b. Mu'adh and said to Sa'd b. 'Ubada: By the everlasting existence of Allah, you are not stating the fact. We would kill him. You are a hypocrite and so you argue in defence of the hypocrites, and thus both the tribes Aus and Khazraj were flared up, until they were about to fall upon one another and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kept standing upon the pulpit and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) tried to subside their anger until they became silent and thus there was silence. 'A'isha further reported: I spent the whole day in weeping and even the night and could not have a wink of sleep even next night. My parents thought that this constant weeping of mine would break my heart. I wept and they sat beside me. In the meanwhile a woman of the Ansar came to see me. I permitted her to see me and she also began to weep. And we were in this very state that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came and he greeted me and then sat down. He had never sat with me since a month when this rumour was afloat, and there was no revelation (to clarity) my case. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) recited Tashahhud (there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Apostle) and then said: Coming to the point, 'A'isha, this is what has reached me about you and if you are innocent, Allah would Himself vindicate your honour, and if accidentally there has been a lapse on your part sock forgiveness of Allah; He will pardon thee for when a servant makes a confession of his fault and turns (to Him) penitently, Allah also turns to him (mercifully) accepting his repentance.</p> <p> When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) talked, my tears dried up and not even a single drop of tear was perceived by me (rolling out of my eyes). I said to my father: You give a reply to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on my behalf. He said: By Allah, I do not know what I should say to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). I then said to my mother: Give a reply to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on my behalf, but she said: By Allah, I do not know what I should say to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). I was a small girl at that time and I had not read much of the Qur'an (but I said): By Allah, I perceive that you have heard about this and it has settled down in your mind and you have taken it to be true, so if I say to you that I am quite innocent, and Allah knows that I am innocent, you would never believe me to be true, and if I confess to (the alleged) lapse before you, whereas Allah knows that I am completely innocent (and I have not committed this sin at all), in that case You will take me to be true and, by Allah, I, therefore, find no other alternative for me and for you except that what the father of Yousuf said:, (My course is) comely patience. And Allah it is Whose help is to be sought for in that (predicament) which ye describe" (xii 18). After this I turned my face to the other side and lay down on my bed. By Allah, I was fully aware of this fact that I was innocent but I did not expect that Allah would descend Wahy Matlu (Qur'anic Wahy) in my case as I did not think myself so much important that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, would speak in this matter in words to be recited. I only hoped that Allah would in vision give an indication of my innocence to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) during his sleep. And, by Allah, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had not moved an inch from where he had been sitting and none from the members of my family had gone that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, descended revelation upon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) there and then and he felt the burden which he used to feel at the time of receiving revelation. He began to perspire because of the burden of words of Allah as they descended upon him even during the winter season and there fell the drops of his sweat like silvery beads. When this state of receiving revelation was over, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) smiled and the first words which he spoke to me were that he said: 'A'isha, there is glad tidings for you. Verily, Allah has vindicated your honour, and my mother who had been standing by me said: Get up (and thank him, i. e. the Holy Prophet). I said: By Allah, I shall not thank him and laud him but Allah Who has descended revelation vindicating my honour. She ('A'isha) said: Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed:" 'Verily, those who spread the slander are a gang among you" (and) ten (subsequent) verses in regard to my innocence. She further said: Abu Bakr used to give to Mistah (some stipend) as a token of kinship with him and for his poverty and he (Abu Bakr) said: By Allah, now I would not spend anything for him. 'A'isha said: It was upon this that Allah the Exalted and Glorious revealed this verse:" And let not those who possess dignity and ease among you swear to give to the near of the kin" up to" Yearn ye not that Allah may forgive you?" Hibban b. Musa' said that 'Abdullah b. Mubarak used to say: It is a verse contained in the Book which most (eminently) brightens the hope.</p> <p> Abu Bakr said: By Allah, I wish that Allah should pardon me. I shall never stop this stipend. So he continued to give him the stipend which he had withdrawn. 'A'isha said that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) asked Zainab, daughter of Jahsh, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), about me what she knew or what she had seen in me, and she said: Allah's Messenger, I shall not say anything without hearing (with my ears) and seeing with my eyes. By Allah, I find nothing in her but goodness. (And she stated this in spite of the fact) that she was the only lady who amongst the wives of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) used to vie with me but Allah saved her in bringing false allegation against me because of her God-consciousness. Her sister Hamna bint Jahsh, however, opposed her and she was undone along with others.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6674"> Book 037, Number 6674: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri through other chains of transmitters but with a slight variation of wording. In the hadith transmitters on the authority of 'Urwa, there is an addition of these words:" 'A'isha did not like that Hassan should be rebuked in her presence and she used to say: It was he who wrote this verse also:" 'Verily, my father and my mother and my honour, those are all meant for defending the honour of Muhammad against you." And 'Urwa further reported that 'A'isha said: By Allah, the person, about whom the allegation was trade used to say: Hallowed be Allah, by One, in Whose hand is my life, I have never unveiled any woman, and then he die, & as a martyr in the cause of Allah, and in the narration transmitted on the authority of Ya'qub b. Ibrahim., the word is Mu'irin and in the narration transmitted on the'authority of 'Abd al-Razzaq it is Mughirin. 'Abd b. Humaid said: I said to 'Abd al-Razzaq: What does this word Mughirin mean? And he said: Al- waghra means intense heat.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6675"> Book 037, Number 6675: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'Isha reported: When I came under discussion what the people had to say about me, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood up for delivering an address and he recited tashahhud (I bear witness to the fact that iheie is no god but Allah) and praised Allah, lauded Him what He rightly deserves and then said: Coming to the point. Give me an advice about them who have brought false charge about my family. By Allah, I know no evil in the members of my family and the person in connection with whom the false charge is being levelled, I know no evil in him too. And he never entered my house but in my presence and when I was away on a journey, he remained with me even in that. The rest of the hadith is the same but with this change that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to my house and asked my maidservant and she said: By Allah, I know no fault in her but this that she sleeps, and goat comes and eats the kneaded flour. Some of the Companions (of the Holy Prophet) scolded her and said: State the fact before Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and they even made a pointed reference (to this incident). She said: gallowed be Allah. By Allah, I know about her as does the jeweller know about the pure piece of gold. And when this news reached the person in connection with whom the allegation was made he said: Hallowed be Allah. By Allah, I have never unveiled any woman. 'A'isha said: He fell as a martyr in the cause of Allah, and there is this addition in this hadith that the people who had brought false allegation amongst them were Mistah and Hamna and Hassan. And so far as the hypocrite 'Abdullah b. Ubayy is concerned, he was one who tried his best to gather the false news and then gave them the wind. And he was in fact a fabricator and there was Hamna, daughter of Jahsh with him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 11: THE EXONERATION OF THE SLAVEGIRL OF ALLAH'S APOSTLE (MAY PEACE BE UPON HIM) FROM A FALSE CHARGE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="037.6676"> Book 037, Number 6676: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that a person was charged with fornication with the slavegirl of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to 'Ali: Go and strike his neck. 'Ali came to him and he found him in a well making his body cool. 'Ali said to him: Come out, and as he took hold of his hand and brought him out, he found that his sexual organ had been cut. Hadrat 'Ali refrained from striking his neck. He came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger, he has not even the sexual organ with him.</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-1988948283898067777?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-64055410610435286102008-03-10T10:11:00.001-07:002008-03-10T10:11:45.482-07:00Book 36: The Book of Heart-Melting Traditions (Kitab Al-Riqaq)<p><strong> Chapter 1: THE MAJORITY IN PARADISE WOULD CONSIST OF THE POOR PIOUS PERSONS AND THE MAJORITY OF THE DENIZENS OF HELL WOULD CONSIST OF WOMEN, AND THE TRIAL BY MEANS OF WOMEN </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6596"> Book 036, Number 6596: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Usama b. Zaid reported that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) said: I stood at the door of Paradise and I found that the overwhelming majority of those who entered therein was that of poor persons and the wealthy persons were detained to get into that. The denizens of Hell were commanded to get into Hell, and I stood upon the door of Fire and the majority amongst them who entered there was that of women.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6597"> Book 036, Number 6597: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn Abbas reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I had a chance to look into the Paradise and I found that majority of the people was poor and I looked into the Fire and there I found the majority constituted by women.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6598"> Book 036, Number 6598: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6599"> Book 036, Number 6599: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Ibn 'Abbas reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stated like this: Re looked into the Fire of Hell. The rest of the hadith is the same.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6600"> Book 036, Number 6600: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Imran b. Husain reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Amongst the inmates of Paradise the women would form a minority.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6601"> Book 036, Number 6601: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mutarrif through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6602"> Book 036, Number 6602: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) supplicated in these words:" O Allah, I seek refuge in Thee from the withdrawal of Thine blessing and the change of Thine protection (from me) and from the sudden wrath of Thine, and from every displeasure of Thine."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6603"> Book 036, Number 6603: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Usama b. Zaid reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I have not left after me any (chance) of turmoil more injurious to men than the harm done to the men because of women.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6604"> Book 036, Number 6604: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Usama b. Zaid b. Harith and Sa'id b. Zaid b. 'Amr b. Naufal both reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I have not left after me turmoil for the people but the harm done to men by women.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6605"> Book 036, Number 6605: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sulaiman Taimi with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6606"> Book 036, Number 6606: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Sa'id Khudri reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The world is sweet and green (alluring) and verily Allah is going to install you as vicegerent in it in order to see how you act. So avoid the allurement of women: verily, the first trial for the people of Isri'll was caused by women. And in the hadith transmitted on the authority of Ibn Bashshar the words are:" So that He should see how you act."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: THE STORY OF THE THREE PERSONS OF THE CAVE AND THEIR MAKING GOOD DEEDS OF THEIRS AS THE MEANS OF RIDDANCE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6607"> Book 036, Number 6607: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Three persons set out on a journey. They were overtaken by rain and they had to find protection in a mountain cave where at its mouth there fell a rock of that mountain and thus blocked them altogether. One of them said to the others: Look to your good deeds that you performed for the sake of Allah and then supplicate Allah, the Exalted, that He might rescue you (from this trouble). One of them said: 0 Allah, I had my parents who were old and my wife and my small children also. I tended the flock and when I came back to them in the evening, I milked them (the sheep, goats, cows, etc.) and first served that milk to my parents. One day I was obliged to go out to a distant place in search of fodder and I could not come back before evening and found them (the parents) asleep. I milked the animals as I used to milk and brought milk to them and stood by their heads avoiding to disturb them from sleep and I did not deem it advisable to serve milk to my children before serving them. My children wept near my feet. I remained there in that very state and my parents too until it was morning. And (0 Allah) if Thou art aware that I did this in order to seek Thine pleasure, grant us riddance from this trouble. (The rock slipped a bit) that they could see the sky. The second one said: 0 Allah, I had a female cousin whom I loved more than the men love the women. I wanted to have sexual intercourse with her; she refused but on the condition of getting one hundred dinirs. It was with very great difficulty that I could collect one hundred dinirs and then paid them to her and when I was going to have a sexual intercourse with her, that she said: Servant of Allah, fear Allah and do not break the seal (of chastity) but by lawful means. I got up. 0 Allah, if Thou art aware that I did this in order to seek Thine pleasure, rid us from this trouble. The situation was somewhat eased for them. The third one said: Allah, I employed a workman for a measure of rice. After he had finished his work I gave him his dues (in the form of) a measure of rice, but he did not accept them. I used these rice as seeds, and that gave a bumper crop and I became rich enough to have cows and flocks (in my possession). He came to me and said: Fear Allah, and commit no crueltv upon me in regard to my dues. I said to him: Takeaway this flock of cows and sheep. He said: Fear Allah and do not make a fun of me. I said: I am not making a fun of you. You take the cows and the flocks. So he took them. 0 Allah, if Thou art aware that I did it for Thine pleasure, case the situation for us. And Allah relieved them from the rest of the trouble.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6608"> Book 036, Number 6608: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Musa b. 'Uqba but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="036.6609"> Book 036, Number 6609: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abdullah b 'Umar reported: I heard Allah's Alessenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Three persons belonging to the earlier Ummahs set out on a journey until they had to spend a night in a cave. The rest of the hadith is the same and the additional words are:" A person amongst them said: 0 Allah, I had my aged parents and I served them milk before I (served that) to my wife, children and my servants." And in case of the second one, the words are:" She avoided me until she was hard pressed because of famine and she came to me and I gave her one hundred and twenty diiiirs" And in cease of the third one (the words are):" I invested his wages, and it brought profit and, as a result thereof, the merchandise increased and there was abundance of goods." And he (the narrator said) that they got out of the cave and began to walk.</p> </blockquote><div class="blogger-post-footer"><img width='1' height='1' src='https://blogger.googleusercontent.com/tracker/3315577676212046578-6405541061043528610?l=muslimshareef.blogspot.com'/></div>coolheadernoreply@blogger.comtag:blogger.com,1999:blog-3315577676212046578.post-62929614203483955082008-03-10T10:10:00.000-07:002008-03-10T10:11:05.915-07:00Book 35: The Book Pertaining to the Remembrance of Allah, Supplication, Repentance and Seeking Forgiveness (Kitab Al-Dhikr)<p><strong> INTRODUCTION </strong></p> <p> Supplication is in fact not only the spontaneous outpourings of man's heart before his Lord, but it is an expression of his sense of nearness to Him, of His Might and Power, of his confidence in His mercy, grace and blessings. If one were to know how much a man supplicates, and what he supplicates about, and how he supplicates, one would be able to see how much spirituality is there in his soul. When a man without any witness speaks with Allah, the soul stands unveiled before its Creator. The higher the note he strikes in his outpouring, the higher is the quality of the faith that is imprinted upon his soul, and serves as a background to all his thought and activity. Thus to understand the spirit of any religion and appraise its value to life and society, supplications serve as the key. The Prophet (may peace be upon him) was a great believer in supplication and prayer. He made supplications to his Lord with zeal and fervour, rarely to be found in the religious literature of the world. One who cares to read them cannot but be overwhelmed with the depth of feelings with which the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) approaches his Lord, his intense love for the Great Master, his deep faith in His unbounded Favours, his unshakeable confidence in His Divine Mercy and unflinching faith in His Might and Power, and his sense of deep humility before Him. These are in fact the multi-coloured threads with which is woven the delicate pattern of the Prophet's (may peace be upon him) supplications. In Islam the supplication which a Muslim has been instructed to make whether singly or in congregation, whether at the appointed hour of ritual prayer or at any sudden call or urge to His Lord, reflects the one single attitude of submission, humility and closeness to God. Whatever is the state of spiritual elevation of the supplication he is made to keep this fact constantly in his mind that he is a humble servant of the Lord. That is the reason why most of the supplications in Islam open with an invocation of the Divine Being; either the personal name of God, i. e. Allah, is used or the descriptive title of His Attributes are called out in order to make the worshipper conscious of his own weak and dependent self before his Master. In Islam man seeks to move God to help and grant him what he desires, and at the same time he seeks unconsciously to work upon himself through the realisation of what God means to him, to strengthen, to renew and to refresh his own inner life. </p> <p>While the expression of dependence and trust is in reality a prerequisite of supplication in Islam, it covers the whole range of human life with all its needs, longings and problems. Supplication finds expression in a deep and urgent longing for self preservation and deliverance from the oppressive situation, forgiveness of sins, elevation of the soul, goodness of the worldly life and that of the Hereafter. This consciousness of one's absolute dependence upon Him, which pervades the entire stock of the Prophet's (may peace be upon him) supplications, shows man's attitude of perfect resignation before the Mighty Will of the Master, but this resignation has nothing of the spirit of despondence and despair in it; it rather illuminates hope out of conviction that the Being Who is the Lord of man's fate can also help him and save him even in the most trying circumstances. </p> <p>The supplications of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) eminently combine in themselves the mystical and the religious traits. While the Muslim supplicates, he, like a mystic, beholds undisturbed with concentrated gaze one Supreme Spiritual Reality Who is the Embodiment and Repository of all values. But, unlike mystics, he, in the hour of contemplation in supplication, does not lose himself but realises himself to be a humble servant of God and therein lies his spiritual strength and unwavering confidence in God. </p> <p>The one more distinguishing feature of the supplications taught by Muhammad (may peace be upon him) is that these are all permeated with the spirit of social fellowship. They do not urge man to stand face to face with God in absolute loneliness, isolated from all other human beings. Herein the suppliant begs his Lord with the full consciousness of human brotherhood and with a feeling that the distress which vexes him is not his only, it is that of his brethren. The graces of God and the salvation for which he longs are also the longings of all believers, nay, of the entire humanity. There is no doubt a deep touch of intimate personal and individual contact with God in these supplications, but this contact is not of the nature of a non-Muslim mystic in which the soul is supposed to be unified with God losing all its individual identity. Here the soul has a communion with Allah with full consciousness of man's own self, his social surroundings and responsibilities. That is why most of the supplications have been expressed in the form" We" and Us". </p><br /><p><strong> Chapter 1: EXHORTATION FOR THE REMEMBRANCE OF ALLAH, THE EXALTED </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6471"> Book 035, Number 6471: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, thus stated: I am near to the thought of My servant as he thinks about Me, and I am with him as he remembers Me. And if he remembers Me in his heart, I also remember him in My Heart, and if he remembers Me in assembly I remember him in assembly, better than his (remembrance), and if he draws near Me by the span of a palm, I draw near him by the cubit, and if he draws near Me by the cubit I draw near him by the space (covered by) two hands. And if he walks towards Me, I rush towards him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6472"> Book 035, Number 6472: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters, but there is no mention of these words:" He draws near Me by the space of a hand, I draw near him by the space (covered) by two hands."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6473"> Book 035, Number 6473: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammam b. Munabbih reported so many ahadith from Abu Huraira and one out of them is this that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said that Allah thus stated: When My servant draws close to me by the span of a palm, I draw close to him by the space of a cubit, and when he draws close to Me by the space of a cubit, I draw close to him by the space (covered) by two hands, and when he draws close to Me by the space (covered by) two hands, I go in hurry towards him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6474"> Book 035, Number 6474: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was travelling along the path leading to Mecca that he happened to pass by a mountain called Jumdan. He said: Proceed on, it is Jumdan, Mufarradun have gone ahead. They (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Allah's Messenger, who are Mufarradun? He said: They are those males and females who remember Allah much.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 2: THE NAMES OF ALLAH, THE EXALTED, AND THE MERIT OF ONE WHO ENUMERATES THEM </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6475"> Book 035, Number 6475: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There are ninety-nine names of Allah; he who commits them to memory would get into Paradise. Verily, Allah is Odd (He is one, and it is an odd number) and He loves odd number. And in the narration of Ibn 'Umar (the words are):" He who enumerated them."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6476"> Book 035, Number 6476: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Verily, there are ninety-nine names for Allah, i. e. hundred excepting one. He who enumerates them would get into Paradise. And Hammam has made this addition on the authority of Abu Huraira who reported it from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) that he said:" He is Odd (one) and loves odd number."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 3: SUPPLICATION SHOULD BE MADE WITH CONVICTION AND WILL </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6477"> Book 035, Number 6477: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When one of you makes supplication, he should supplicate with a will and should not say: O Allah, confer upon me if Thou likest, for there is none to coerce Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6478"> Book 035, Number 6478: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When one of you makes a supplication (to his Lord) one should not say: O Allah, grant me pardon, if Thou so likest, but one should beg one's (Lord) with a will and full devotion, for there is nothing so great in the eye of Allah which He cannot grant.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6479"> Book 035, Number 6479: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: None of you should say to Allah (like this): O Allah, grant me mercy, if thou so likest. The supplication (of his) should (be permeated with) conviction (that it would be accepted by the Lord), for Allah is the Doer of (everything) He likes to do, and there is none to force Him (to do or not to do this or that).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 4: IT IS NOT SOMETHING APPRECIABLE TO MAKE REQUEST FOR DEATH FROM THE LORD WHEN ONE IS IN TROUBLE </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6480"> Book 035, Number 6480: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas (b. Malik) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying. None of you should make a request for death because of the trouble in which he is involved, but if there is no other help to it, then say: O Allah, keep me alive as long as there is goodness in life for me and bring death to me when there is goodness in death for me.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6481"> Book 035, Number 6481: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas through another chain of transmitters, but with a small variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6482"> Book 035, Number 6482: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Nadr b. Anas reported, as when Anas was alive, that he said: Had Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) not stated this.." None should make a request for death," I would have definitely done that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6483"> Book 035, Number 6483: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Hazim reported: I visited Khabbab who bad seven cauteries on his stomach and he s aid: Had Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) not forbidden us to call for death, I would have done so.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6484"> Book 035, Number 6484: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Isma'il through other chains of narrators.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6485"> Book 035, Number 6485: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Hammam b. Munabbih said: Abu Huraira narrated to us ahadith from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and out of these one is that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: None amongst you should make a request for death, and do not call for it before it comes, for when any one of you dies, he ceases (to do good) deeds and the life of a believer is not prolonged but for goodness.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 5: HE WHO LOVES TO MEET ALLAH, ALLAH ALSO LOVES TO MEET HIM, AND HE WHO DISLIKES TO MEET ALLAH, ALLAH ALSO ABHORS TO MEET HIM </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6486"> Book 035, Number 6486: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Ubida b. Samit reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who loves to meet Allah, Allah also loves to meet him, and he who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah also abhors to meet him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6487"> Book 035, Number 6487: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Ubada b. Samit through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6488"> Book 035, Number 6488: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A'isha reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who loves to meet Allah, Allah loves to meet him, and he who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah abhors to meet him. I ('A'isha) said: Allah's Apostle, so far as the feeling of aversion against death is concerned, we all have this feeling. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: It is not that (which you construe), but (this) that when a believer (at the time of death) is given the glad tidings of the mercy of Allah, His Pleasure, and of Paradise, he loves to meet Allah, and Allah also loves to meet him, and when an unbeliever is given the news of the torment at the Hand of Allah, and Hardship to be imposed by Him, he dislikes to meet Allah and Allah also abhors to meet him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6489"> Book 035, Number 6489: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been reported on the authority of Qatida with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6490"> Book 035, Number 6490: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'A'isha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who loves to meet Allah, Allah also loves to meet him, and who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah abhors to meet him. There is death before (one is able to) meet Allah.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6491"> Book 035, Number 6491: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of A'isha through another chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6492"> Book 035, Number 6492: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who loves meeting Allah, Allah loves to meet him, and he who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah abhors to meet him. I (Shuraih b. Hani, one of the narrators) came to A'isha and said to her: Mother of the faithful, I heard Abu Huraira narrate from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) which, if it is actually so, is a destruction to us. Thereupon she said: Those are in fact ruined who are ruined at the words of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). What are (the words which in your opinion would cause your destruction)? He said that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had stated: He who loves to meet Allah, Allah too loves to meet him, and he who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah too abhors to meet him, and there is none amongst us who dons not hate death. Thereupon she said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has in fact stated this, but it does not mean what you construe, but it implies (the time) when one loses the lustre of the eye, and there is rattling in the throat, shudder in the body and convulsion in fingers (at the time of death). (It is about this time) that it has been said: He who loves to meet Allah, Allah would love to meet him, and he who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah would abhor to meet him</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6493"> Book 035, Number 6493: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been reported on the authority of Mutarrif with the same chain of transmitters.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6494"> Book 035, Number 6494: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Musa reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who loves to meet Allah, Allah too loves to meet him, and he who dislikes to meet Allah, Allah abhors to meet him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 6: MERIT OF REMEMBRANCE OF ALLAH AND CALLING HIM, AND NEARNESS TO ALLAH, THE EXALTED </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6495"> Book 035, Number 6495: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him as saying that Allah thus stated: I live in the thought of My servant as he thinks of Me and with him as he calls Me.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6496"> Book 035, Number 6496: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, said: When My servant draws close to Me by the span of a palm, I draw close to him by the cubit and when he draws close to Me by the cubit, I draw close to him by the space (covered) by two hands, and when he draws close to Me by the space (covered) by two hands, I go in hurry towards him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6497"> Book 035, Number 6497: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mu'tamar from his father with the same chain of transmitters, with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6498"> Book 035, Number 6498: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, thus stated: I live in the thought of My servant as he thinks about Me, and I am with him, as he remembers Me And if he remembers Me in his heart, I also remember him in My Heart, and if he remembers Me in assembly I remember him in the assembly, better than he (does that), and if he draws near Me by the span of a palm I draw near him by the cubit, and if he draws near Me by the cubit I draw near him by the space (covered by) two hands. And it he walks towards Me, I rush towards him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6499"> Book 035, Number 6499: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Dharr reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, stated:" He who comes with goodness, there are in store for him ten like those and even more than those: 'And he who comes with vice, ' it is only for that that he is called to account. I even forgive him (as I like) and he who draws close to Me by the span of a palm I draw close to him by the cubit, and he who draws close to Me by the cubit I draw close to him by the space (covered) by two hands, and he who walks towards Me I rush towards him, and he who meets Me in the state that his sins fill the earth, but not associating anything with Me, I would meet Him with the same (vastness) of pardon (on My behalf)." This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Waki'.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6500"> Book 035, Number 6500: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> A hadith like this has been transmitted on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters and he (further) said: There is for him ten like that (the good he performed) or more than that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 7: THE DISAPPROVAL OF SUPPLICATION IN WHICH A REQUEST IS MADE TO ALLAH FOR PUNISHMENT OF ONE'S (MISDEEDS) IN THE WORLD </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6501"> Book 035, Number 6501: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) visited a person from amongst the Muslims in order to inquire (about his health) who had grown feeble like the chicken. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Did you supplicate for anything or beg of Him about that? He said: Yes. I used to utter (these words): Impose punishment upon me earlier in this world, what Thou art going to impose upon me in the Hereafter. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Hallowed be Allah, you have neither the power nor forbearance to take upon yourself (the burden of His Punishment). Why did you not say this: O Allah, grant us good in the world and good in the Hereafter, and save us from the torment of Fire. He (the Holy Prophet) made this supplication (for him) and he was all right.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6502"> Book 035, Number 6502: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Humaid with the same chain of transmitters, but with a slight variation of wording.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6503"> Book 035, Number 6503: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) visited a person from amongst his Companions who had grown as feeble as the chicken. The rest of the hadith is the same, but with this variation that he (the Holy Prophet) said: You have not power enough to undergo the torment imposed by Allah. And there is no mention of: He supplicated Allah for him and He cured him.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6504"> Book 035, Number 6504: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> This hadith had been transmitted on the authority of Anas through another chain of narrators.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 8: MERITS OF THE ASSEMBLIES IN WHICH ALLAH IS REMEMBERED </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6505"> Book 035, Number 6505: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying Allah has mobile (squads) of angels, who have no other work (to attend to but) to follow the assemblies of Dhikr and when they find such assemblies in which there is Dhikr (of Allah) they sit in them and some of them surround the others with their wings till the space between them and the sky of the world is fully covered, and when they disperse (after the assembly of Dhikr is adjourned) they go upward to the heaven and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, asks them although He is best informed about them: Where have you come from? They say: We come from Thine servants upon the earth who had been glorifying Thee (reciting Subhan Allah), uttering Thine Greatness (saying Allah o-Akbar) and uttering Thine Oneness (La ilaha ill Allah) and praising Thee (uttering al-Hamdu Lillah) and begging of Thee. Be would say: What do they beg of Me? They would say: They beg of Thee the Paradise of Thine. He (God) would say: Have they seen My Paradise? They said: No, our Lord. He would say: (What it would be then) if they were to see Mine Paradise? They (the angels) said: They seek Thine protection. He (the Lord) would say: Against what do they seek protection of Mine? They (the angels) would say: Our Lord, from the Hell-Fire. He (the Lord) would say: Have they seen My Fire? They would say: No. He (the Lord) would say: What it would be if they were to see My Fire? They would say: They beg of Thee forgiveness. He would say: I grant pardon to them, and confer upon them what they ask for and grant them protection against which they seek protection. They (the angels) would again say: Our Lord, there is one amongst them such and such simple servant who happened to pass by (that assembly) and sat there along with them (who had been participating in that assembly). He (the Lord) would say: I also grant him pardon, for they are a people the seat-fellows of whom are in no way unfortunate.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 9: THE MERIT OF THIS (SUPPLICATION):" O ALLAH, GRANT US THE GOOD IN THE WORLD AND GOOD IN THE HEREAFTER AND SAVE US FROM THE TORMENT OF HELL" </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6506"> Book 035, Number 6506: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p>Qatada asked Anas which Supplication Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) frequently made. He said: The supplication that he (the Holy Prophet made very frequently is this:" O Allah, grant us the good in this world and the good in the Hereafter and save us from the torment of Hell-Fire." He (Qatada) said that whenever Anas had to supplicate he made this very supplication, and whenever he (intended) to make another supplication he (inserted) this very supplication in that.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6507"> Book 035, Number 6507: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Anas reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to supplicate (in these words):" Our Lord, grant us the good in this world and the good in the Hereafter and save us from the torment of Hell Fire."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <br /><p><strong> Chapter 10: THE MERIT OF PRONOUNCING TAHLIL, TASBIH AND SUPPLICATION </strong></p> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6508"> Book 035, Number 6508: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who uttered these words:" There is no god but Allah, the One, having no partner with Him. Sovereignty belongs to Him and all the praise is due to Him, and He is Potent over everything" one hundred times every day there is a reward of emancipating ten slaves for him, and there are recorded hundred virtues to his credit, and hundred vices are blotted out from his scroll, and that is a safeguard for him against the Satan on that day till evening and no one brings anything more excellent than this, except one who has done more than this (who utters these words more than one hundred times and does more good acts) and he who utters:" Hallowed be Allah, and all praise is due to Him," one hundred times a day, his sins are obliterated even if they are equal to the extent of the foam of the ocean.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6509"> Book 035, Number 6509: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who recites in the morning and in the evening (these words):" Hallowed be Allah and all praise is due to Him" one hundred times, he would not bring on the Day of Resurrection anything excellent than this except one who utters these words or utters more than these words.</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6510"> Book 035, Number 6510: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> 'Amr b. Maimun reported: He who uttered:" There is no god but Allah, the One, having no partner with Him, His is the Sovereignty and all praise is due to Him and He is Potent over everything" ten times, he is like one who emancipated four slaves from the progeny of Isma'il. Rabi' b. Khuthaim narrated a hadith like this. Sha'bi reported: I said to Rabi': From whom did you hear it? He said: From 'Amr b. Maimun. I came to 'Amr b. Maimun and said to him: From whom did you hear this hadith? He said: from Ibn Abi Laila. I came to Ibn Abi Laila and said to him: From whom did you hear this hadith? He said: From Abu Ayyub Ansari, who narrated from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him).</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr /> <em> <a name="035.6511"> Book 035, Number 6511: </a> </em> <blockquote> <p> Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Two are the expressions which are light on the tongue, but heavy in scale, dear to the Compassionate One:" Hallowed be Allah and praise is due to Him" ;" Hallowed be Allah, the Great."</p> </blockquote> <!-- EH --> <!-- BH --> <hr